Selected quad for the lemma: sense_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
sense_n place_n signify_v word_n 4,916 5 4.4090 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A35128 Labyrinthvs cantuariensis, or, Doctor Lawd's labyrinth beeing an answer to the late Archbishop of Canterburies relation of a conference between himselfe and Mr. Fisher, etc., wherein the true grounds of the Roman Catholique religion are asserted, the principall controversies betwixt Catholiques and Protestants thoroughly examined, and the Bishops Meandrick windings throughout his whole worke layd open to publique view / by T.C. Carwell, Thomas, 1600-1664. 1658 (1658) Wing C721; ESTC R20902 499,353 446

There are 52 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

have_v open_v the_o father_n meaning_n viz._n that_o not_o only_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v a_o particular_a church_n keep_v entire_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n but_o that_o in_o it_o all_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o do_v keep_v the_o same_o apostolical_a tradition_n by_o be_v in_o unity_n and_o communion_n with_o she_o thus_o you_o may_v see_v to_o what_o shift_n and_o upon_o what_o shelf_n even_o learned_a man_n be_v often_o drive_v by_o maintain_v error_n from_o the_o premise_n i_o argue_v thus_o all_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o must_v of_o necessity_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n propter_fw-la potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o powerful_a principality_n this_o be_v st._n irenaeus_n his_o proposition_n but_o there_o can_v be_v no_o necessity_n they_o all_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o that_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o powerful_a principality_n if_o her_o say_a power_n exend_v not_o to_o they_o all_o this_o be_v evident_a to_o reason_n ergo_fw-la this_o more_o powerful_a principality_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v needs_o extend_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o and_o not_o only_o to_o those_o of_o the_o suburbicary_n church_n or_o patriarchal_a diocese_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o bishop_n plead_v 7._o little_o therefore_o be_v it_o to_o his_o advantage_n what_o he_o pretend_v to_o show_v out_o of_o ruffinus_n viz_o that_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o roman_a patriarchate_n be_v contain_v within_o the_o island_n and_o precinct_n of_o italy_n since_o it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o vote_n of_o all_o antiquity_n and_o give_v st._n irenaeus_n the_o lie_n nay_o it_o make_v her_o jurisdiction_n incomparable_o less_o than_o any_o of_o the_o other_o patriarchal_a church_n yea_o of_o much_o less_o extent_n than_o many_o metropolitan_a church_n to_o which_o i_o add_v it_o be_v contrary_a even_o to_o the_o common_a compute_v of_o protestant_n themselves_z who_o often_o grant_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n which_o undeniable_o contain_v many_o vast_a province_n and_o nation_n beside_o italy_n and_o the_o island_n about_o it_o wherefore_o as_o the_o bishop_n can_v not_o altogether_o deny_v but_o the_o word_n suburbicary_n be_v undue_o add_v by_o ruffinus_n in_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n so_o i_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o understand_v it_o unless_o we_o will_v contradict_v all_o the_o world_n not_o in_o the_o bishop_n sense_n as_o signify_v only_o the_o church_n of_o italy_n and_o the_o island_n thereto_o belong_v but_o as_o general_o signify_v all_o church_n and_o city_n any_o way_n suburdinate_a to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v at_o that_o time_n know_v as_o also_o to_o this_o day_n by_o the_o name_n of_o urbs_fw-la or_o city_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o way_n of_o excellency_n not_o as_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o perfect_a or_o governor_n of_o rome_n in_o regard_n of_o who_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n we_o confess_v it_o command_v only_o those_o few_o place_n about_o it_o in_o italy_n but_o as_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o emperor_n himself_o in_o which_o sense_n the_o word_n suburbicary_n right_o signify_v all_o city_n or_o church_n whatsoever_o within_o the_o roman_a empire_n as_o the_o word_n romania_n also_o ancient_o signify_v the_o whole_a imperial_a territory_n as_o card._n perron_n clear_o prove_v upon_o this_o subject_a this_o exposition_n of_o ruffinus_n his_o term_n suburbicary_n want_v not_o ground_n even_o in_o his_o own_o text_n who_o make_v as_o it_o be_v a_o contradistinction_n between_o egypt_n and_o the_o suburbicary_n church_n now_o under_o egypt_n he_o comprehend_v lybia_n pentapolis_n and_o ethiopia_n which_o be_v without_o the_o precinct_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o power_n and_o care_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n but_o all_o suburbicary_n city_n that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v under_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v imperial_a be_v leave_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o he_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o seat_n at_o rome_n be_v still_o to_o be_v their_o chief_a prelate_n and_o to_o have_v a_o more_o immediate_a and_o ordinary_a care_n over_o they_o than_o he_o have_v over_o those_o other_o city_n which_o be_v out_o of_o the_o empire_n though_o as_o st._n peter_n successor_n he_o have_v the_o universal_a care_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o full_a potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la which_o st._n irenaeus_n ascribe_v unto_o he_o 8._o touch_v calvin_n conjecture_n that_o recourse_n be_v therefore_o have_v to_o rome_n because_o at_o that_o time_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v more_o constant_a to_o the_o truth_n and_o less_o distract_v with_o dangerous_a opinion_n it_o be_v whole_o inept_v for_o it_o be_v false_a that_o before_o st._n irenaeus_n time_n rome_n be_v more_o constant_a in_o the_o faith_n than_o the_o other_o church_n of_o greece_n and_o africa_n have_v be_v see_v the_o african_a church_n be_v then_o as_o free_v from_o heresy_n as_o rome_n 9_o the_o bishop_n here_o give_v himself_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o trouble_n to_o wrest_v 14._o from_o we_o a_o text_n or_o two_o of_o epiphanius_n touch_v the_o authority_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n wherein_o though_o he_o grant_v somewhat_o beyond_o his_o wont_a reservedness_n that_o st._n peter_n person_n be_v understand_v in_o that_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la etc._n etc._n matth._n 16._o 18._o yet_o will_v he_o by_o no_o mean_n be_v persuade_v to_o extend_v it_o any_o further_a than_o his_o person_n but_o we_o affirm_v it_o be_v clear_a even_o by_o the_o text_n of_o st._n epiphanius_n that_o this_o promise_v make_v by_o christ_n to_o st._n peter_n be_v derive_v to_o his_o successor_n for_o first_o after_o the_o word_n 1622._o et_fw-fr porte_fw-fr inferorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o this_o father_n immediate_o add_v quarum_fw-la portarum_fw-la nomine_fw-la hereses_n &_o haeresewn_n conditores_fw-la intelliguntur_fw-la by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n heresy_n and_o the_o author_n of_o heresy_n be_v understand_v that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o heresy_n and_o all_o author_n of_o heresy_n whatever_o shall_v arise_v such_o indefinite_a proposition_n be_v equivalent_a to_o universal_a true_a it_o be_v the_o bishop_n omit_v these_o last_o word_n by_o his_o wont_a et_fw-la cetera_fw-la however_o since_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o by_o the_o firm_a rock_n whereon_o our_o saviour_n according_a to_o epiphanius_n promise_v to_o build_v his_o church_n st._n peter_n be_v personal_o understand_v we_o shall_v easy_o make_v good_a our_o argument_n from_o it_o and_o solve_v his_o objection_n for_o he_o must_v consequent_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n so_o found_v on_o st._n peter_n as_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o foundation_n it_o be_v to_o prevail_v against_o all_o heresy_n and_o inventor_n of_o heresy_n that_o shall_v at_o any_o time_n impugn_v the_o church_n faith_n which_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v verify_v in_o case_n christ_n promise_n be_v to_o be_v limit_v to_o st._n peter_n person_n alone_o for_o else_o why_o may_v not_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n after_o st._n peter_n death_n prevail_v against_o the_o church_n yea_o so_o far_o prevail_v as_o utter_o to_o extinguish_v the_o true_a faith_n wherefore_o the_o bishop_n long_a discourse_n by_o way_n of_o gloss_n on_o this_o and_o some_o other_o text_n of_o the_o same_o father_n concern_v we_o not_o at_o all_o for_o it_o be_v once_o grant_v that_o st._n peter_n be_v personal_o to_o uphold_v the_o church_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n as_o its_o principal_a foundation_n under_o christ_n we_o have_v our_o desire_n nevertheless_o we_o deny_v that_o he_o have_v any_o ground_n to_o limit_v to_o st._n peter_n only_o those_o eulogium_n give_v he_o by_o st._n epiphanius_n and_o not_o allow_v they_o extendible_a to_o his_o successor_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v necessary_a for_o their_o uphold_v the_o church_n also_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o true_a faith_n wherefore_o as_o st._n peter_n authority_n be_v by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n right_o urge_v by_o epiphanius_n to_o prove_v the_o godhead_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n against_o the_o heretic_n that_o deny_v it_o so_o doubtless_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o promise_n and_o institution_n of_o christ_n may_v and_o aught_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o successor_n be_v urge_v in_o time_n to_o come_v in_o proof_n of_o any_o other_o contest_v article_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n though_o therefore_o we_o affirm_v not_o as_o the_o relatour_n be_v frequent_o impose_v upon_o we_o that_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o text_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n as_o prince_n and_o monarch_n yet_o we_o say_v that_o by_o virtue_n
acceptation_n only_o a_o secondary_a and_o accessary_a confirmation_n of_o they_o ibid._n not_o absolute_o necessary_a as_o the_o pope_n be_v ibid._n in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o pastor_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o general_a council_n page_n 213_o the_o whole_a church_n consent_n virtual_o include_v and_o effectual_o declare_v by_o a_o general_n council_n page_n 216_o the_o prelate_n in_o general_a council_n assemble_v may_v proceed_v against_o the_o pope_n himself_o if_o his_o crime_n be_v notorious_a page_n 231_o 233_o what_o kind_n of_o free_a council_n it_o be_v that_o protestant_n call_v for_o page_n 233_o no_o condition_n or_o rule_n for_o hold_v a_o general_n council_n just_o assignable_a now_o which_o have_v not_o be_v competent_o observe_v by_o such_o former_a general_n council_n as_o protestant_n reject_v page_n 240_o the_o church_n universal_a indispensable_o oblige_v to_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o general_n council_n page_n 250_o the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v receive_v not_o as_o the_o decision_n of_o man_n but_o as_o the_o dictate_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n p._n 252_o general_a council_n not_o of_o humane_a but_o divine_a institution_n page_n 245_o no_o know_a heretic_n or_o schismatic_a have_v right_o to_o sit_v in_o general_a council_n page_n 233_o in_o what_o case_n general_a council_n may_v be_v amend_v the_o former_a by_o the_o latter_a page_n 255_o 256_o 257_o 258_o they_o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o conclusion_n though_o not_o in_o the_o mean_n or_o argument_n on_o which_o the_o conclusion_n be_v ground_v page_n 263_o 264_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o succeed_a council_n how_o they_o differ_v page_n 265_o 266_o the_o council_n of_o arimini_fw-la and_o second_o of_o ephesus_n no_o lawful_a general_n council_n page_n 268_o 339_o the_o supposition_n of_o a_o general_a council_n err_v in_o one_o point_n render_v it_o liable_a to_o err_v in_o all_o page_n 378_o creed_n st._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n no_o absolute_a summary_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n page_n 350_o 351_o no_o not_o even_o suppose_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n ibid._n what_o the_o author_n intent_n be_v in_o compose_v it_o ibid._n st._n athanasius_n first_o compose_v and_o publish_v it_o in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n page_n 351_o donatist_n a_o narrative_n of_o their_o proceed_n in_o the_o business_n of_o cecilianus_n their_o archbishop_n and_o primate_n of_o africa_n page_n 185_o 186_o donatist_n why_o they_o address_v themselves_o to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n ibid._n the_o emperor_n open_o profess_v that_o the_o donatists_n cause_n belong_v not_o to_o his_o cognizance_n ibid._n what_o he_o do_v in_o it_o be_v force_v from_o he_o by_o importunity_n page_n 185_o 187_o he_o promise_v to_o ask_v pardon_n of_o the_o bishop_n for_o meddle_v in_o the_o donatists_n business_n page_n 186_o the_o donatist_n thrice_o condemn_v page_n 185_o 186_o emperor_n no_o secret_a compact_n between_o the_o emperor_n sigismond_n and_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o huss_n page_n 156_o no_o just_a sentence_n ever_o pronounce_v by_o a_o emperor_n against_o the_o pope_n p._n 192_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o emperor_n for_o some_o time_n ratisy_v the_o pope_n election_n ibid._n that_o custom_n 〈◊〉_d long_o since_o by_o the_o emperor_n themselves_o p._n 193._o the_o emperor_n favour_n some_o advantage_n to_o the_o pope_n temporal_a interest_n no_o ground_n of_o his_o spiritual_a authority_n page_n 200_o the_o surmise_n of_o have_v one_o emperor_n over_o all_o king_n as_o well_o as_o one_o pope_n over_o all_o bishop_n a_o mere_a chimaera_n or_o fiction_n page_n 225_o the_o emperor_n as_o supreme_a over_o his_o subject_n in_o all_o civil_a affair_n as_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o matter_n spiritual_a page_n 226_o the_o pope_n never_o practise_v to_o bring_v the_o emperor_n under_o they_o in_o civil_a affair_n ibid._n no_o catholic_n emperor_n ever_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o reform_v religion_n without_o or_o contrary_a to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n ibid._n error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n though_o not_o fundamental_a inconsistent_a with_o the_o acknowledge_a holiness_n of_o the_o church_n page_n 150_o every_o congregation_n unchurch_v that_o hold_v error_n in_o faith_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o page_n 151_o eucharist_n that_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v receive_v fast_v be_v a_o tradition_n apostolical_a page_n 67_o receive_v it_o under_o one_o kind_n no_o error_n in_o faith_n page_n 207_o 271_o nor_n contrary_a to_o christ_n institution_n ibid._n the_o non-obstante_a in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n decree_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n to_o what_o it_o refer_v page_n 271_o 272_o 273_o the_o eucharist_n under_o one_o kind_n a_o perfect_a sacrament_n page_n 271_o frequent_o receive_v in_o primitive_a time_n under_o one_o kind_n page_n 289_o give_v by_o christ_n himself_o in_o one_o kind_n page_n 318_o why_o necessary_a that_o the_o priest_n who_o consecrate_v shall_v receive_v in_o both_o kind_n page_n 319_o excommunication_n never_o pronounce_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o where_o obstinacy_n and_o perverseness_n enforce_v it_o page_n 48_o incur_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la by_o all_o english_a protestant_n for_o deny_v any_o one_o of_o the_o 39_o article_n page_n 49_o the_o english_a church_n more_o just_o censurable_a for_o tyranny_n in_o point_n of_o excommunication_n than_o the_o roman_a page_n 49_o 50_o faith_n divine_a and_o infallible_a faith_n inconsistent_a with_o the_o denial_n of_o any_o one_o point_n sufficient_o propound_v by_o the_o church_n page_n 17_o faith_n implicit_a what_o it_o import_v in_o catholic_a sense_n page_n 20_o implicit_a faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v have_v of_o all_o divine_a revelation_n whatsoever_o explicite_fw-la only_o of_o what_o the_o church_n define_v and_o propound_v for_o such_o page_n 20_o the_o english_a protestant_n faith_n not_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n page_n 328_o 329_o 330_o 331_o implicit_a faith_n not_o use_v by_o catholic_n at_o pleasure_n page_n 346_o 347_o roman_n faith_n the_o consequence_n of_o this_o argument_n make_v good_a the_o roman_a faith_n be_v once_o the_o one_o save_v faith_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v so_o still_o p._n 340_o 350_o father_n catholic_n show_v all_o due_a respect_n to_o the_o father_n yet_o without_o derogation_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n page_n 60_o 61_o the_o father_n account_v none_o catholic_n but_o such_o as_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n page_n 131_o proof_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n from_o the_o father_n page_n 102_o 105_o 108._o 131_o 137_o 178_o protestant_n profession_n to_o stand_v to_o the_o father_n what_o it_o signify_v page_n 208_o fundamental_a a_o word_n in_o religion_n of_o various_a and_o ambiguous_a acception_n page_z 14_o how_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o present_a dispute_n page_n 14_o 34_o 44_o catholic_n allow_v a_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_a and_o non-fundamental_a point_n in_o some_o sense_n page_z 15_o 20_o 21_o 23_o 34_o 44_o all_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n and_o sufficient_o know_v to_o be_v so_o be_v fundamental_a that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o or_o deny_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n page_z 15_o 16_o 27_o point_n not-fundamental_a deposit_v with_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n no_o less_o than_o point_v fundamental_a page_n 38_o point_n fundamental_a necessary_a to_o be_v know_v in_o specie_fw-la or_o particular_o page_n 45_o 176_o 177_o 217_o 243_o government_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o monarchical_a way_n not_o changeable_a by_o any_o power_n on_o earth_n page_n 221_o 222_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o state_n in_o matter_n of_o policy_n and_o civil_a concern_v page_n 243_o 244_o 245_o greek_n their_o error_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n procession_n from_o the_o son_n proper_o heretical_a page_z 6_o 7_o king_n james_z his_o censure_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n page_n 5_o ancient_a greek_n differ_v only_o in_o word_n or_o manner_n of_o speak_v from_o the_o latin_n not_o in_o sense_n page_z 7_o 8_o 21_o 22_o the_o greek_n exclude_v from_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n not_o by_o the_o pope_n summons_n but_o by_o their_o own_o schism_n page_n 233_o divers_a orthodox_n bishop_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n present_a in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n page_n 233_o 234_o modern_a greek_n no_o true_a church_n page_z 10_o 11_o the_o business_n of_o hieremias_n the_o greek_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n page_n 238_o his_o censure_n of_o the_o lutheran_n doctrine_n a_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n ibid._n he_o utter_o reject_v the_o lutheran_n communion_n ibid._n hell_n the_o word_n hell_n do_v not_o always_o signify_v the_o place_n of_o the_o
yesterday_o force_v to_o it_o by_o a_o impossibility_n of_o otherwise_o avoid_v the_o strength_n of_o catholic_n argument_n against_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o this_o controversy_n be_v so_o small_a and_o inconsiderable_a that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o produce_v a_o heresy_n on_o either_o side_n be_v not_o this_o to_o make_v all_o the_o church_n of_o christendom_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n quite_o blind_a and_o themselves_o only_o clear_a and_o sharp-sighted_a which_o swell_a presumption_n what_o spirit_n it_o argue_v and_o whence_o it_o proceed_v all_o those_o who_o have_v learn_v from_o st._n augustine_n that_o pride_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o heresy_n will_v easy_o collect_v but_o though_o this_o persuasion_n have_v not_o be_v attest_v by_o such_o cloud_n of_o witness_n theological_a reason_n be_v so_o strong_a a_o foundation_n to_o confirm_v it_o that_o i_o wonder_v how_o rational_a man_n can_v ever_o be_v induce_v to_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o be_v it_o think_v you_o enough_o to_o assert_v the_o divinity_n and_o consubstantiality_n and_o personal_a distinction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o bishop_n say_v to_o save_v from_o heresy_n the_o denial_n of_o his_o procession_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n as_o from_o one_o principle_n will_v not_o he_o that_o shall_v affirm_v the_o son_n to_o be_v a_o distinct_a person_n from_o and_o consubstantial_a to_o the_o father_n but_o deny_v his_o eternal_a generation_n from_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n or_o he_o who_o hold_v the_o holy_a ghost_n distinct_a from_o and_o consubstantial_a to_o they_o both_o but_o affirm_v his_o procession_n to_o be_v from_o the_o son_n only_o and_o not_o from_o the_o father_n will_v he_o not_o be_v high_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n it_o be_v then_o most_o evident_a that_o not_o only_o a_o error_n against_o the_o consubstantiality_n and_o distinction_n but_o against_o the_o origination_n generation_n and_o procession_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v sufficient_a matter_n of_o heresy_n which_o be_v here_o most_o manifest_o find_v either_o in_o the_o affirmative_a maintain_v by_o the_o latin_n or_o in_o the_o negative_a embrace_v by_o the_o greek_n about_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o son_n there_o must_v also_o be_v find_v sufficient_a matter_n to_o constitute_v the_o erroneous_a tenet_n heretical_a and_o see_v protestant_n acknowledge_v with_o the_o bishop_n here_o that_o the_o greek_n in_o this_o be_v the_o err_a party_n how_o can_v they_o possible_o excuse_v they_o from_o heresy_n 5._o but_o before_o i_o fall_v upon_o a_o particular_a examen_fw-la of_o his_o proof_n we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o greek_n some_o be_v ancient_a other_o modern_a the_o ancient_a greek_n though_o they_o do_v indeed_o in_o this_o question_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n procession_n express_v themselves_o sometime_o by_o the_o word_n per_fw-la filium_fw-la by_o the_o son_n yet_o the_o sense_n they_o give_v they_o be_v confignificative_a with_o à_fw-la filio_fw-la from_o the_o son_n whereas_o the_o modern_a greek_n since_o they_o raise_v this_o dispute_n against_o the_o latin_a church_n will_v not_o admit_v that_o expression_n à_fw-la filio_fw-la but_o per_fw-la filium_fw-la only_a and_o that_o too_o in_o a_o sense_n dissignificative_a to_o à_fw-la filio_fw-la for_o they_o so_o affert_fw-la the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n that_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n alone_o and_o not_o from_o the_o son_n at_o all_o thereby_o make_v the_o word_n perrfilium_fw-la to_o signify_v the_o medium_fw-la only_o not_o the_o principle_n from_o which_o he_o be_v originize_v as_o true_o as_o from_o the_o father_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o erroneous_a persuasion_n of_o the_o modern_a greek_o be_v manifest_a not_o only_o by_o those_o long_a discourse_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n set_v down_o at_o large_a in_o the_o 778._o council_n of_o florence_n but_o by_o the_o free_a acknowledgement_n of_o hieremias_n late_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v censura_fw-la orientalis_n ecclesiae_fw-la cap._n 2._o where_o expound_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o modern_a greek_a church_n he_o have_v these_o express_a word_n spiritum_fw-la verò_fw-la sanctum_fw-la dominum_fw-la vivificantem_fw-la &_o exit_fw-la patre_fw-la solo_n procedentem_fw-la now_o after_o this_o distinction_n of_o ancient_n and_o modern_a greek_n and_o their_o different_a meaning_n even_o under_o the_o same_o expression_n it_o will_v be_v seasonable_a to_o give_v solution_n to_o all_o the_o bishop_n proof_n to_o the_o first_o therefore_o however_o the_o bishop_n labour_v to_o excuse_v the_o modern_a greek_n from_o a_o fundamental_a 5._o error_n he_o take_v a_o wrong_a course_n to_o effect_v it_o and_o in_o stead_n of_o excuse_v they_o direct_o overthrow_n and_o condemn_v they_o nay_o render_v those_o who_o he_o endeavour_v to_o excuse_v incapable_a of_o that_o favourable_a exposition_n which_o the_o author_n he_o allege_v in_o their_o behalf_n have_v make_v for_o some_o of_o the_o greek_a church_n for_o pag._n 24._o §_o 9_o num_fw-la 1._o he_o acknowledge_v that_o error_n of_o deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n to_o be_v a_o grievous_a error_n in_o divinity_n and_o pag._n 26._o §_o 9_o num_fw-la 3._o that_o the_o greek_n think_v a_o diverse_a thing_n from_o the_o latin_n in_o this_o point_n as_o i_o have_v note_v above_o now_o to_o prove_v that_o these_o who_o err_v thus_o grievous_o and_o differ_v from_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o re_fw-mi not_o in_o the_o word_n only_o but_o in_o the_o thing_n do_v yet_o not_o err_v fundamental_o he_o bring_v testimony_n from_o our_o author_n who_o speak_v of_o such_o grecian_n even_o as_o he_o cite_v they_o which_o err_v not_o at_o all_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o allege_a author_n and_o which_o differ_v from_o the_o latin_a church_n only_o voce_fw-mi in_o word_n and_o not_o in_o the_o thing_n or_o matter_n of_o their_o doctrine_n thus_o he_o cite_v durandus_fw-la pluralitas_fw-la in_o voice_fw-la salvata_fw-la unitate_fw-la in_o re_n non_fw-la repugnat_fw-la unitati_fw-la fidei_fw-la magist._n sentent_fw-fr dist._n 11._o sanè_fw-la sciendum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la licet_fw-la in_o presenti_fw-la articulo_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la graeci_fw-la verbo_fw-la difcordent_fw-la tamen_fw-la sensu_fw-la non_fw-la differunt_fw-la and_o the_o like_a say_n be_v in_o all_o the_o follow_a author_n there_o cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n but_o what_o a_o strange_a medium_fw-la be_v this_o to_o prove_v his_o intent_n he_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o such_o as_o be_v in_o grievous_a error_n in_o divinity_n err_v not_o fundamental_o and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o he_o allege_v such_o as_o have_v no_o real_a error_n at_o all_o in_o divinity_n he_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o such_o as_o differ_v in_o re_fw-mi in_o the_o thing_n itself_o from_o the_o latin_a church_n about_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n err_v not_o fundamental_o and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o he_o allege_v such_o as_o differ_v only_o from_o we_o voce_fw-mi in_o word_n but_o not_o in_o the_o thing_n controvert_v be_v not_o this_o strong_a logic_n let_v his_o lordship_n defender_n then_o prove_v from_o the_o say_a authority_n his_o assertion_n viz._n that_o those_o greek_n who_o err_v grievous_o in_o divinity_n and_o differ_v in_o re_fw-mi from_o the_o latin_a church_n err_v not_o fundamental_o and_o he_o will_v have_v do_v more_o than_o my_o lord_n himself_o have_v do_v or_o any_o other_o i_o presume_v can_v do_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n every_o half_a eye_n will_v discover_v how_o inapposite_o the_o relatour_n have_v reason_v hithertó_n and_o bring_v no_o authority_n at_o all_o to_o make_v good_a his_o assertion_n for_o the_o master_n of_o sentence_n he_o speak_v only_o of_o such_o ancient_a author_n as_o differ_v only_o in_o voce_fw-mi in_o word_n and_o not_o in_o substance_n from_o the_o latin_a church_n or_o at_o lest_o who_o speak_v not_o so_o clear_o against_o it_o but_o that_o their_o word_n may_v admit_v some_o tolerable_a interpretation_n but_o how_o prove_v this_o that_o those_o of_o the_o greek_a party_n say_v now_o no_o more_o nor_o otherwise_o than_o the_o other_o do_v in_o those_o ancient_a time_n see_v it_o be_v manifest_a from_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o from_o hieremias_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n that_o their_o doctrine_n can_v admit_v of_o that_o exposition_n which_o those_o author_n give_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a grecian_n for_o they_o flat_o and_o in_o express_a term_n deny_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n and_o understand_v per_fw-la filium_fw-la by_o the_o son_n in_o that_o sense_n which_o exclude_v à_fw-la filio_fw-la from_o the_o son_n this_o difference_n of_o time_n be_v long_o since_o observe_v by_o st._n bonaventure_n in_o that_o very_a place_n wherein_o his_o lordship_n cite_v he_o to_o wit_n in_o 1._o sentent_fw-fr do_v 11._o
bishop_n frame_v a_o notable_a turn_v in_o his_o labyrinth_n wind_v in_o the_o word_n of_o st._n augustin_n quite_o contrary_a to_o st._n augustins_n meaning_n to_o make_v they_o speak_v for_o himself_o for_o have_v affirm_v in_o his_o own_o text_n as_o we_o hear_v but_o now_o that_o plain_a scripture_n with_o evident_a sense_n or_o a_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n must_v have_v room_n where_o a_o wrangle_a disputant_n may_v not_o be_v allow_v just_a over_o against_o these_o word_n in_o his_o own_o margin_n at_o litera_fw-la f._n he_o put_v these_o latin_a word_n of_o st._n augustin_n quae_fw-la quidem_fw-la si_fw-la tam_fw-la manifesta_fw-la monstratur_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o dubium_fw-la venire_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la praeponenda_fw-la est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la illis_fw-la rebus_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o catholicâ_fw-la teneor_fw-la in_o english_a thus_o which_o true_o if_o it_o be_v show_v so_o clear_a that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n of_o it_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o those_o thing_n by_o which_o i_o be_o hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n now_o by_o cite_v these_o word_n and_o no_o more_o but_o leave_v out_o those_o immediate_o precedent_n he_o leave_v it_o also_o doubtful_a to_o what_o the_o word_n quae_fw-la which_o in_o st._n augustins_n text_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v but_o yet_o by_o put_v plain_a scripture_n etc._n etc._n in_o his_o own_o text_n right_o over_o against_o it_o he_o suppose_v doubtless_o his_o reader_n will_v not_o judge_v that_o quae_fw-la can_v be_v refer_v to_o any_o thing_n else_o save_o scripture_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v it_o in_o his_o text_n and_o consequent_o will_v conclude_v that_o st._n augustin_n and_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n viz._n that_o plain_a scripture_n evident_a sense_n or_o a_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o st._n augustin_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v have_v nothing_o at_o all_o either_o of_o plain_a scripture_n or_o evident_a sense_n or_o a_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n but_o address_v his_o speech_n to_o the_o manichaean_o he_o write_v the_o we_o apud_fw-la vos_fw-la autem_fw-la ubi_fw-la nihil_fw-la horum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la i_o invitet_fw-la ac_fw-la teneat_fw-la sola_fw-la personat_fw-la veritatis_fw-la pollicitatio_fw-la and_o then_o follow_v the_o word_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n quae_fw-la quidem_fw-la si_fw-la tam_fw-la manifesta_fw-la monstratur_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o dubium_fw-la venire_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o with_o you_o say_v st._n augustin_n to_o the_o abovesaid_a heretic_n who_o have_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o may_v invite_v and_o hold_v i_o only_o a_o promise_n of_o truth_n make_v a_o noise_n which_o truth_n if_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v so_o clear_a as_o it_o can_v be_v call_v in_o doubt_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v etc._n etc._n where_o it_o be_v plain_a quae_fw-la which_o be_v relative_a only_o to_o truth_n and_o not_o to_o scripture_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o nay_o it_o be_v relative_n only_o to_o that_o truth_n in_o this_o place_n which_o the_o manichee_n brag_v of_o and_o promise_v which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v plain_a scripture_n etc._n etc._n that_o it_o be_v no_o other_o than_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o that_o epistle_n of_o manichaeus_n entitle_v fundamentum_fw-la which_o st._n augustin_n at_o that_o present_a confute_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o follow_a word_n neither_o indeed_o can_v st._n augustin_n be_v understand_v to_o speak_v of_o plain_a scripture_n in_o this_o place_n as_o though_o that_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o a_o general_n council_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o possible_a case_n for_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o of_o general_a council_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o plain_a scripture_n understand_v by_o plain_a scripture_n scripture_n true_o sense_v and_o interpret_v for_o he_o dispute_v ex_fw-la professo_fw-la against_o that_o supposition_n or_o persuasion_n and_o prove_v that_o no_o clear_a place_n of_o scripture_n can_v be_v produce_v against_o the_o common_a receive_v doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n from_o this_o grand_a inconvenience_n necessary_o follow_v upon_o it_o viz._n that_o if_o such_o a_o thing_n can_v happen_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n or_o the_o gospel_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o believe_v rational_o and_o infallible_o either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o 4._o not_o the_o scripture_n because_o he_o receive_v they_o only_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o church_n who_o authority_n be_v infringe_v by_o the_o plain_a scripture_n which_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v bring_v against_o she_o though_o therefore_o st._n augustin_n have_v say_v in_o express_a term_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a he_o do_v not_o that_o clear_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v name_v before_o yet_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o suppose_v as_o the_o bishop_n here_o suppose_v that_o evident_a scripture_n can_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o church_n receive_v doctrine_n that_o he_o profess_o teach_v and_o prove_v the_o contrary_a and_o use_v the_o allege_a word_n quae_fw-la quidem_fw-la si_fw-la tam_fw-la manifesta_fw-la monstratur_fw-la etc._n etc._n only_o ex_fw-la suppositione_n impossibili_fw-la in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o st._n paul_n speak_v gal._n 1._o si_fw-mi angelus_n de_fw-la caelum_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n teach_v otherwise_o than_o we_o have_v teach_v you_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v saint_n paul_n well_o know_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v teach_v contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n yet_o so_o he_o speak_v and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o evident_a reason_n or_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n which_o the_o bishop_n talk_v of_o for_o neither_o can_v that_o true_o and_o proper_o speak_v be_v any_o more_o bring_v against_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o doctrine_n then_o plain_a scripture_n the_o relatours_n supposition_n than_o have_v no_o more_o ground_n in_o st._n augustin_n then_o if_o one_o shall_v prove_v that_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n can_v preach_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n because_o st._n paul_n say_v though_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v denounce_v unto_o you_o otherwise_o than_o we_o have_v preach_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v now_o if_o the_o church_n may_v be_v a_o err_a definer_n i_o will_v glad_o know_v why_o a_o err_a disputer_n may_v not_o oppugn_v it_o so_o long_o at_o least_o as_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o see_v his_o error_n that_o he_o be_v full_o persuade_v he_o err_v not_o and_o that_o the_o church_n err_v in_o define_v against_o he_o as_o those_o heretic_n be_v persuade_v against_o who_o st._n augustin_n dispute_v in_o this_o place_n his_o second_o wind_v be_v that_o he_o labour_v to_o prove_v from_o the_o forecited_n word_n of_o st._n augustin_n that_o plain_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o may_v convince_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n if_o it_o be_v ill_o found_v now_o st._n augustin_n speak_v as_o little_a of_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n not_o fundamental_a according_a to_o the_o matter_n they_o contain_v in_o this_o sentence_n as_o he_o do_v of_o scripture_n for_o by_o those_o word_n praeponenda_fw-la est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la illis_fw-la rebus_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o catholica_fw-la teneor_fw-la there_o be_v not_o once_o name_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n not_o fundamental_a or_o any_o comparison_n or_o contrariety_n mention_v betwixt_o they_o for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o st._n augustin_n may_v reject_v some_o of_o the_o church_n definition_n which_o by_o plain_a scripture_n he_o find_v to_o be_v erroneous_a in_o matter_n of_o small_a moment_n and_o yet_o remain_v still_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n submit_v to_o she_o in_o all_o fundamental_a point_n but_o the_o question_n be_v this_o whether_o st._n augustin_n be_v to_o forsake_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o become_v a_o profess_a enemy_n of_o she_o as_o he_o once_o have_v be_v in_o adhere_v to_o manichaeus_n his_o doctrine_n if_o plain_a and_o undeniable_a truth_n shall_v be_v bring_v against_o the_o church_n and_o for_o manichaeus_n so_o that_o the_o truth_n mention_v by_o he_o in_o this_o place_n be_v to_o have_v be_v so_o fundamental_a that_o it_o have_v be_v able_a utter_o to_o overthrow_v the_o church_n and_o establish_v manichaeisme_n if_o any_o such_o truth_n can_v have_v be_v undoubted_o demonstrate_v if_o therefore_o this_o text_n can_v prove_v any_o thing_n it_o must_v prove_v that_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n can_v err_v fundamental_o and_o so_o become_v no_o church_n which_o be_v clear_o against_o his_o lordship_n
english_a church_n be_v not_o yet_o resolve_v what_o be_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o article_n of_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n but_o the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o have_v the_o english_a church_n resolve_v in_o this_o point_n i_o will_v not_o much_o trouble_v myself_o about_o it_o as_o be_v not_o fundamental_a either_o in_o his_o lordship_n sense_n or_o we_o but_o mr._n fisher_n ground_v his_o speech_n upon_o those_o word_n of_o mr._n rogers_n viz._n in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o this_o article_n there_o be_v not_o that_o consent_n that_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v thus_o he_o whereupon_o the_o relatour_n also_o confeff_v that_o some_o have_v be_v too_o busy_a in_o crucify_a this_o article_n as_o for_o catholic_n upon_o who_o the_o bishop_n will_v lay_v the_o same_o 44._o charge_n they_o all_o believe_v it_o as_o it_o lie_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v not_o define_v by_o the_o church_n whether_o we_o have_v this_o article_n from_o tradition_n only_o or_o also_o from_o scripture_n i_o hope_v divine_n may_v be_v permit_v to_o hold_v different_a opinion_n about_o it_o without_o prejudice_n to_o the_o unity_n or_o integrity_n of_o faith_n durand_n may_v also_o be_v suffer_v to_o teach_v though_o somewhat_o contrary_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n do_v not_o go_v down_o into_o hell_n real_o but_o virtual_o and_o by_o effect_n only_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o that_o other_o question_n whether_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n do_v descend_v real_o and_o in_o its_o essence_n into_o the_o low_a pit_n and_o place_n of_o the_o damn_a or_o real_o only_a into_o that_o place_n or_o region_n of_o hell_n which_o be_v call_v limbus_n patrum_fw-la but_o virtual_o from_o thence_o into_o the_o low_a hell_n our_o adversary_n may_v know_v that_o all_o catholic_a divine_n agree_v durand_n except_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n in_o his_o bless_a soul_n do_v real_o descend_v into_o hell_n our_o school_n dispute_v and_o difference_n be_v into_o what_o part_n of_o hell_n he_o real_o descend_v as_o likewise_o touch_v the_o manner_n of_o exhibit_v his_o divine_a presence_n among_o the_o dead_a and_o of_o the_o measure_n of_o its_o effect_n to_o wit_n of_o consolation_n and_o deliverance_n towards_o the_o good_a or_o of_o terror_n confusion_n and_o punishment_n towards_o the_o bad._n and_o though_o they_o shall_v differ_v in_o their_o opinion_n more_o than_o they_o do_v in_o this_o or_o any_o other_o question_n concern_v religion_n yet_o they_o all_o submit_v their_o judgement_n as_o they_o do_v to_o the_o censure_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n when_o ever_o she_o think_v fit_a to_o interpose_v her_o authority_n and_o define_v the_o matter_n all_o these_o seem_a tempest_n of_o controversy_n among_o we_o will_v end_v in_o a_o quiet_a calm_a i_o can_v wish_v his_o lordship_n have_v be_v in_o his_o time_n and_o that_o his_o follower_n will_v now_o be_v of_o the_o same_o temper_n for_o then_o all_o dispute_n and_o difference_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n will_v cease_v yet_o school-divinity_n remain_v entire_a wherefore_o to_o what_o the_o bishop_n assert_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 45._o take_v the_o word_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o believe_v they_o without_o further_a dispute_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o primitive_a father_n of_o the_o church_n agree_v in_o i_o answer_v all_o catholic_n profess_v to_o do_v the_o same_o so_o that_o the_o question_n can_v only_o be_v touch_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n as_o they_o lie_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n concern_v they_o now_o as_o for_o stapletons_n affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v silent_a in_o the_o 47._o point_n of_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n and_o in_o mention_v that_o there_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n suppose_v we_o shall_v grant_v that_o christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n yet_o his_o lordship_n party_n will_v not_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v sufficient_a that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o for_o the_o other_o point_n stapleton_n be_v not_o so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o think_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o scripture_n for_o every_o ordinary_a scholar_n know_v that_o place_n of_o matth._n 16._o 18._o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n nor_o that_o she_o be_v to_o be_v even_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n both_o catholic_a and_o apostolical_a for_o how_o often_o and_o invincible_o do_v this_o most_o worthy_a doctor_n prove_v both_o these_o point_n from_o scripture_n in_o several_a part_n of_o his_o work_n wherefore_o in_o the_o place_n allege_v it_o be_v evident_a his_o meaning_n be_v only_o to_o deny_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_n and_o apostolic_a be_v express_o in_o scripture_n though_o they_o be_v there_o in_o sense_n and_o effect_n as_o i_o presume_v our_o opponent_n themselves_o will_v not_o be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o deny_v so_o that_o his_o lordship_n facetious_a discourse_n here_o upon_o stapleton_n and_o some_o text_n of_o scripture_n may_v rather_o be_v take_v for_o a_o jest_n to_o please_v his_o own_o humour_n then_o for_o a_o argument_n against_o we_o this_o incidental_a quarrel_n with_o stapleton_n be_v over_o the_o bishop_n fierce_o 48._o again_o fall_v to_o expostulate_v both_o with_o mr._n fisher_n and_o a._n c._n for_o cite_v mr._n roger_n authority_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o with_o how_o little_a reason_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o very_a title_n of_o mr._n rogers_n book_n which_o as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o acknowledge_v run_v thus_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o for_o this_o give_v he_o a_o jerk_n that_o possible_o he_o may_v think_v a_o little_a too_o well_o of_o his_o own_o pain_n and_o give_v his_o book_n too_o high_a a_o title_n true_o i_o conceive_v it_o of_o small_a importance_n to_o bestow_v much_o time_n upon_o this_o subject_a either_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o bishop_n disagreement_n with_o master_n rogers_n or_o the_o pretend_a variance_n between_o vega_n and_o soto_n touch_v man_n certain_a assurance_n of_o justification_n or_o salvation_n which_o jar_n be_v deny_v by_o bellarmin_n who_o cite_v both_o of_o they_o for_o the_o common_a opinion_n that_o a_o man_n can_v be_v certain_a of_o his_o justification_n or_o salvation_n by_o certainty_n of_o faith_n without_o a_o especial_a revelation_n 5._o however_o i_o can_v but_o observe_v that_o though_o catharinus_n disagree_v from_o bellarmin_n and_o the_o common_a opinion_n concern_v the_o foresay_a point_n as_o the_o bishop_n object_n yet_o he_o dissent_v not_o formal_o from_o the_o decree_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n who_o sense_n he_o profess_v to_o follow_v submit_v himself_o in_o that_o and_o all_o other_o his_o opinion_n to_o her_o censure_n so_o that_o though_o i_o grant_v he_o to_o have_v fall_v into_o a_o error_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o accusable_a of_o heresy_n as_o not_o be_v obstinate_a in_o his_o mistake_n 6._o the_o bishop_n be_v our_o good_a friend_n in_o say_v that_o all_o protestant_n he_o 50._o may_v have_v add_v all_o other_o profess_a enemy_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o main_a exception_n which_o they_o joint_o take_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o several_a confession_n for_o by_o their_o agree_v in_o this_o but_o in_o little_a or_o nothing_o else_o they_o sufficient_o show_v themselves_o enemy_n to_o the_o true_a church_n which_o be_v one_o and_o only_o one_o by_o unity_n of_o doctrine_n from_o whence_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v judge_v to_o depart_v by_o reason_n of_o their_o division_n now_o that_o our_o author_n disagree_v not_o in_o faith_n we_o have_v show_v a_o little_a before_o the_o relatour_n do_v much_o perplex_v himself_o about_o the_o catholic_a ibidem_fw-la church_n pronounce_v anathema_n but_o this_o be_v not_o do_v so_o easy_o as_o he_o imagine_v for_o this_o anathema_n fall_v only_o upon_o such_o as_o obstinate_o oppose_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o if_o in_o such_o case_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v pronounce_v we_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v in_o peace_n and_o quietness_n that_o all_o will_v be_v bring_v to_o confusion_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o concord_n we_o find_v in_o our_o own_o church_n and_o those_o sad_a dissension_n and_o disorder_n most_o apparent_a in_o they_o wherefore_o i_o believe_v that_o reason_n will_v rather_o ascribe_v the_o trouble_n of_o christendom_n to_o the_o freedom_n which_o other_o take_v and_o give_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o permit_v every_o one_o to_o believe_v what_o he_o
find_v no_o difficulty_n to_o do_v three_o his_o lordship_n except_v against_o the_o application_n of_o the_o place_n bring_v by_o a._n c._n out_o of_o st._n bernard_n and_o st._n austin_n but_o we_o answer_v his_o exception_n do_v not_o weaken_v the_o force_n of_o the_o say_a place_n for_o first_o concern_v that_o of_o st._n bernard_n let_v we_o suppose_v as_o the_o relatour_n contend_v that_o st._n bernard_n by_o those_o word_n quae_fw-la major_n superbia_fw-la etc._n etc._n resurrect_v what_o great_a pride_n can_v there_o be_v then_o for_o one_o man_n to_o prefer_v his_o judgement_n before_o the_o whole_a congregation_n as_o if_o he_o alone_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n mean_v only_o that_o particular_a congregation_n to_o which_o he_o be_v then_o preach_v yet_o be_v his_o say_n not_o unapt_o apply_v by_o a._n c._n to_o our_o present_a purpose_n by_o a_o argument_n à_fw-fr minore_fw-la ad_fw-la majus_fw-la to_o show_v the_o more_o exorbitant_a pride_n of_o those_o who_o prefer_v their_o private_a fanatic_a opinion_n before_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n this_o certain_o protestant_n do_v by_o their_o solemn_a protestation_n and_o obstinate_a maintain_v their_o private_a opinion_n what_o the_o relatour_n add_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n for_o a_o private_a man_n to_o prefer_v his_o judgement_n before_o the_o whole_a congregation_n and_o another_o thing_n for_o a_o intelligent_a man_n in_o some_o thing_n unsatisfied_a modest_o to_o propose_v his_o doubt_n even_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v of_o no_o advantage_n to_o he_o for_o first_o though_o we_o shall_v grant_v his_o lordship_n that_o martin_n luther_n ulrick_n 〈◊〉_d john_n calvin_n theodore_n beza_n john_n knox_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o crew_n be_v to_o be_v account_v intelligent_a person_n yet_o will_v he_o or_o can_v he_o say_v they_o propose_v their_o doubt_n modest_o to_o the_o church_n sure_o not_o and_o whoever_o say_v so_o will_v easy_o be_v convince_v of_o ignorance_n in_o their_o opinion_n or_o practice_n but_o put_v case_n a_o more_o modest_a propound_v of_o doubt_n have_v be_v use_v as_o the_o bishop_n seem_v to_o wish_v yet_o unless_o the_o doubt_n be_v in_o point_n undecided_a by_o the_o church_n the_o modest_a proposal_n of_o they_o can_v not_o at_o all_o help_n the_o protestant_a cause_n in_o regard_n their_o doubt_n be_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n already_o determine_v for_o such_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o question_v any_o of_o which_o with_o what_o seem_a modesty_n soever_o be_v sinful_a heretical_a and_o damnable_a his_o exception_n against_o a._n c_n interpretation_n of_o st._n austin_n be_v no_o less_o weak_a the_o holy_a doctor_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o insolent_a madness_n for_o a_o man_n to_o dispute_v whether_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v to_o be_v do_v which_o be_v 5._o usual_o hold_v and_o do_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o bishop_n first_o except_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o only_o of_o the_o catholic_a yet_o have_v often_o show_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_a be_v all_o one_o and_o see_v a._n c._n add_v to_o roman_a faith_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n this_o authority_n remain_v still_o entire_a against_o he_o next_o he_o say_v a._n c._n apply_v this_o text_n of_o st._n austin_n to_o the_o roman_a faith_n whereas_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n but_o first_o i_o answer_v a._n c._n apply_v the_o place_n both_o to_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o practice_n the_o place_n be_v most_o proper_o understand_v even_o in_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o bishop_n himself_o give_v to_o the_o word_n second_o if_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o dispute_v against_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n much_o great_a will_v it_o be_v to_o dispute_v against_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n hold_v by_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o application_n of_o the_o place_n be_v still_o good_a by_o the_o rule_n à_fw-fr minore_fw-la ad_fw-la majus_fw-la and_o reach_n to_o every_o person_n that_o in_o any_o matter_n whatever_o obstinate_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o reason_n may_v be_v because_o there_o be_v always_o some_o point_n or_o matter_n of_o faith_n involve_v in_o every_o universally-practised_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o a_o pertinacious_a defend_n of_o any_o point_n whatsoever_o contrary_a to_o what_o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v be_v by_o st._n austin_n term_v a_o most_o insolent_a madness_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o a_o right-sobe_a man_n modest_o proceed_v may_v in_o some_o case_n dispute_v a_o point_n with_o the_o roman_a either_o church_n or_o prelate_n as_o irenaeus_n do_v with_o pope_n victor_n in_o the_o controversy_n which_o arise_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o century_n provide_v it_o be_v do_v with_o submission_n and_o profession_n of_o due_a obedience_n to_o that_o church_n and_o prelate_n which_o can_v never_o be_v unless_o the_o dispute_n be_v about_o matter_n as_o yet_o undecided_a by_o the_o church_n 6._o touch_v a._n c's_o illation_n i_o answer_v since_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o whole_a catholic_a or_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o sense_n often_o explicate_v can_v err_v a._n c._n do_v well_o infer_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o make_v a_o divorce_n or_o schism_n from_o it_o the_o relatour_n grant_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n 5._o can_v universal_o err_v in_o absolute_a fundamental_a doctrine_n and_o blame_v bellarmin_n for_o needless_o busy_v himself_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n can_v never_o fall_v into_o heresy_n but_o i_o answer_v beauties_n labour_n be_v not_o needless_a since_o protestant_n grant_v not_o the_o church_n exempt_v from_o all_o error_n save_v only_o in_o fundamental_o as_o they_o call_v they_o whereas_o bellarmin_n prove_v it_o equal_o of_o all_o fundamental_o or_o not-fundamentals_a moreover_o bellarmin_n well_o observe_v that_o protestant_n general_o grant_v this_o only_a to_o the_o invisible_a church_n whereas_o he_o prove_v 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o visible_a and_o though_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o margin_n endeavour_v to_o show_v they_o hold_v the_o same_o also_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n yet_o this_o only_a prove_n that_o protestant_n contradict_v one_o another_o which_o we_o deny_v not_o and_o bellarmin_n likewise_o observe_v it_o 1._o elsewhere_o yea_o calvin_n himself_o here_o cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n when_o he_o say_v the_o church_n can_v err_v add_v this_o restriction_n if_o she_o do_v not_o propose_v doctrine_n beside_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o if_o she_o do_v it_o seem_v according_a to_o he_o she_o may_v err_v but_o i_o must_v confess_v i_o have_v often_o desire_v and_o do_v yet_o much_o long_o to_o know_v which_o be_v doctrine_n absolute_o fundamental_a and_o necessary_a to_o all_o man_n salvation_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o protestant_n i_o believe_v scarce_o any_o man_n will_v be_v able_a to_o set_v they_o down_o our_o tenet_n be_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o whatever_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v be_v deny_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n and_o consequent_o be_v fundamental_a to_o we_o and_o to_o all_o true_a christian_n so_o that_o these_o follow_a word_n of_o the_o bishop_n viz._n that_o she_o may_v err_v in_o superstructure_n and_o deduction_n and_o other_o by_o and_o unnecessary_a truth_n if_o her_o curiosity_n or_o other_o weakness_n carry_v she_o beyond_o or_o cause_v she_o to_o fall_v short_a of_o her_o rule_n be_v injurious_a to_o the_o church_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o that_o prerogative_n of_o holiness_n which_o as_o he_o himself_o in_o this_o very_a place_n confess_v always_o accompany_v the_o true_a church_n 7._o this_o holiness_n consist_v chief_o in_o the_o verity_n of_o faith_n so_o the_o relatour_n himself_o profess_v in_o these_o word_n the_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n ibidem_fw-la consist_v as_o much_o if_o not_o more_o in_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o faith_n as_o in_o the_o integrity_n of_o manner_n etc._n etc._n insomuch_o that_o if_o the_o church_n fail_v in_o the_o verity_n of_o faith_n she_o can_v be_v no_o long_o holy_a nay_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n have_v prevail_v much_o against_o she_o contrary_a to_o the_o promse_n of_o christ._n i_o assert_v therefore_o that_o the_o present_a church_n be_v 18._o no_o more_o liable_a to_o error_n through_o curiosity_n or_o weakness_n than_o be_v the_o primitive_a nor_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n with_o a_o general_n council_n more_o subject_a to_o err_v upon_o that_o account_n than_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ._n in_o the_o follow_a word_n the_o relatour_n to_o
poverty_n of_o st._n peter_n himself_o the_o first_o of_o they_o yet_o can_v not_o his_o spiritual_a authority_n suffer_v the_o least_o diminution_n by_o it_o wherefore_o to_o make_v short_a it_o concern_v we_o not_o to_o take_v further_a notice_n of_o his_o many_o historical_a criticism_n and_o mere_a conjecture_n upon_o this_o subject_n unto_o num_fw-la 13._o and_o whereas_o he_o again_o en_fw-fr passant_a touch_v upon_o the_o pope_n election_n approve_v and_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o emperor_n it_o have_v receive_v a_o full_a answer_n above_o 6._o his_o next_o endeavour_n be_v to_o infringe_v a._n c.'s_n proof_n of_o the_o pope_n supreme_a 13._o pastoral_a authority_n out_o of_o st._n irenaeus_n to_o which_o purpose_n we_o be_v tell_v by_o way_n of_o caveat_n how_o unlikely_a a_o man_n st._n irenaeus_n be_v be_v a_o gallican_n bishop_n to_o captivate_v the_o liberty_n of_o that_o church_n under_o the_o principality_n of_o rome_n as_o if_o forsooth_o the_o so_o much_o talk_v of_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n have_v be_v thing_n know_v or_o hear_v of_o in_o st._n irenaeus_n time_n but_o irenaeus_n say_v the_o bishop_n reprehend_v pope_n victor_n for_o excommunicate_v the_o asian_a church_n cite_v for_o this_o in_o the_o margin_n euseb_n l._n 5._o c._n 25._o it_o shall_v be_v c._n 24._o we_o answer_v eusebius_n have_v not_o a_o word_n import_v reprehension_n but_o rather_o a_o friendly_a and_o seasonable_a persuasion_n his_o word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n he_o exhort_v he_o after_o a_o handsome_a manner_n as_o reflect_v on_o the_o pope_n dignity_n and_o clear_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v of_o right_a some_o authority_n over_o the_o asian_a bishop_n and_o by_o consequence_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o otherwise_o it_o have_v be_v very_o absurd_a in_o st._n irenaeus_n to_o persuade_v pope_n victor_n not_o to_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n so_o many_o christian_a province_n have_v he_o believe_v as_o protestant_n contend_v he_o do_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o to_o cut_v they_o off_o just_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v entreat_v the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n for_o example_n not_o to_o excommunicate_v the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o province_n over_o who_o he_o have_v not_o any_o the_o least_o pretence_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o admit_v st._n irenaeus_n have_v indeed_o reprove_v pope_n victor_n for_o what_o he_o do_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o asian_a bishop_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n only_o in_o the_o exercise_n whereof_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o pope_n through_o misinformation_n incident_a to_o humane_a frailty_n may_v sometime_o go_v too_o far_o what_o do_v it_o prove_v more_o than_o that_o possible_o the_o pope_n proceed_v a_o little_a too_o severe_o or_o hasty_o with_o those_o christian_n who_o fault_n do_v not_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o st._n irenaeus_n and_o some_o other_o deserve_v so_o heavy_a a_o censure_n but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o all_o this_o rather_o confirm_v the_o pope_n power_n do_v st._n irenaeus_n or_o any_o other_o beside_o he_o complain_v of_o the_o pope_n usurpation_n in_o this_o case_n do_v they_o charge_v he_o with_o take_v more_o upon_o he_o than_o he_o have_v authority_n to_o do_v do_v they_o tell_v he_o he_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o excommunicate_v those_o asian_a bishop_n or_o use_v any_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n over_o they_o as_o protestant_n tell_v he_o in_o reference_n to_o themselves_o and_o yet_o who_o can_v doubt_v but_o this_o they_o will_v have_v tell_v he_o and_o with_o great_a bitterness_n too_o consider_v the_o provocation_n have_v they_o have_v just_a ground_n to_o do_v so_o or_o can_v have_v do_v it_o without_o proclaim_v themselves_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la schismatic_n and_o shake_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n discipline_n and_o unity_n but_o these_o be_v only_o his_o lordship_n light_a skirmish_n he_o venture_v at_o last_o to_o grapple_v with_o the_o authority_n itself_o allege_v by_o a._n c._n out_o of_o s._n irenaeus_n 3._o who_o word_n though_o faithful_o cite_v by_o he_o in_o the_o latin_a yet_o in_o render_v they_o english_a he_o cunning_o wind_n about_o in_o his_o labyrinth_n for_o first_o he_o translate_v undique_fw-la round_o about_o as_o if_o st._n irenaeus_n speak_v only_o of_o those_o neighbour_a church_n round_o about_o rome_n and_o not_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n whereas_o undique_fw-la as_o natural_o signify_v every_o where_o and_o from_o all_o part_n witness_n thomas_n thomasius_n where_o the_o word_n undique_fw-la be_v thus_o english_v from_o all_o place_n part_n and_o corner_n every_o where_o which_o be_v also_o second_v by_o the_o greek_a lexicon_n where_o these_o adverb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o undeniable_o signify_v from_o all_o part_n universal_o be_v render_v by_o the_o word_n undique_fw-la and_o that_o here_o it_o must_v needs_o signify_v every_o where_o or_o from_o all_o part_n be_v clear_a from_o the_o very_a scope_n of_o st._n irenaeus_n discourse_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o full_a evidence_n plenissima_fw-la ostensio_fw-la of_o the_o doctrine_n preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n all_o over_o the_o world_n in_o toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la and_o this_o he_o evince_v from_o the_o necessary_a recourse_n which_o in_o all_o doubt_n of_o faith_n all_o church_n or_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v to_o have_v from_o all_o part_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n propter_fw-la potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la for_o her_o more_o powerful_a principality_n as_o to_o their_o constant_a guide_n therein_o and_o by_o virtue_n of_o which_o recourse_n all_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o have_v always_o conserve_v the_o integrity_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n in_o quâ_fw-la semper_fw-la ab_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la undique_fw-la conservata_fw-la est_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n traditio_fw-la this_o argument_n do_v irenaeas_n use_v in_o confutation_n of_o the_o hevetique_n he_o dispute_v against_o in_o france_n which_o take_v his_o word_n in_o the_o true_a and_o genuine_a sense_n be_v a_o very_a pregnant_a one_o and_o give_v as_o a_o rule_n to_o teach_v not_o only_o heretic_n but_o all_o christian_n that_o the_o doctrine_n or_o tradition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o touchstone_n of_o all_o apostolical_a doctrine_n if_o now_o we_o turn_v the_o medal_n and_o look_v upon_o this_o holy_a doctor_n argument_n in_o the_o sense_n the_o bishop_n take_v his_o word_n we_o shall_v find_v it_o speak_v little_a more_o than_o nonsense_n his_o lordship_n to_o avoid_v the_o prerogative_n ascribe_v by_o st._n irenaeus_n and_o all_o catholic_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v needs_o as_o i_o have_v say_v make_v undique_fw-la to_o signify_v no_o more_o then_o round_o about_o thereby_o restrain_v that_o more_o powerful_a principality_n st._n irenaeus_n speak_v of_o to_o the_o province_n of_o italy_n and_o island_n about_o it_o as_o the_o patriarchate_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n beyond_o which_o the_o power_n of_o that_o church_n extend_v not_o in_o which_o supposition_n 〈◊〉_d will_v be_v find_v to_o argue_v thus_o against_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o the_o church_n or_o the_o faithful_a round_n about_o rome_n viz._n those_o only_a of_o italy_n and_o the_o island_n adjacent_a which_o make_v up_o the_o roman_a patriarchate_n shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n propter_fw-la potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la that_o be_v for_o its_o bishop_n precedence_n of_o place_n or_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o patriarchal_a power_n within_o the_o aforesaid_a precinct_n therefore_o the_o gnostic_n and_o other_o heretic_n in_o france_n or_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v convince_v of_o heresy_n for_o not_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o this_o fine_a meandrick_n logic_n well_o beseem_v so_o noble_a a_o labyrinth_n but_o let_v we_o observe_v how_o the_o relatour_n deal_v with_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o this_o father_n text_n in_o quâ_fw-la semper_fw-la ab_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la undique_fw-la conservata_fw-la est_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n traditio_fw-la which_o he_o thus_o translate_v in_o which_o church_n be_v conserve_v that_o tradition_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o not_o according_a to_o his_o author_n who_o say_v always_o conserve_v the_o word_n always_o be_v not_o to_o appear_v in_o english_a for_o fear_v it_o may_v induce_v some_o impartial_a reader_n to_o entertain_v too_o worthy_a a_o opinion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n neither_o do_v he_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o give_v his_o reader_n the_o english_a of_o these_o word_n ab_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la undique_fw-la though_o insert_v among_o the_o former_a which_o will_v too_o much_o
of_o argument_n to_o disprove_v it_o but_o know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o all_o antiquity_n wind_v about_o and_o fall_v upon_o that_o odious_a question_n of_o kill_v and_o depose_v king_n wherein_o he_o presume_v it_o will_v be_v more_o easy_a for_o he_o to_o choke_v his_o adversary_n but_o it_o shall_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n for_o we_o say_v first_o he_o commit_v a_o gross_a fallacy_n argue_v à_fw-la negatione_fw-la speciei_fw-la ad_fw-la negationem_fw-la generis_fw-la which_o be_v a_o new_a kind_n of_o logic_n for_o what_o be_v it_o else_o to_o infer_v the_o pope_n have_v no_o universal_a power_n or_o supremacy_n at_o all_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n because_o he_o have_v not_o such_o or_o such_o a_o particular_a power_n over_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n his_o lordship_n shall_v have_v remember_v that_o we_o be_v yet_o upon_o the_o question_n an_o sit_v whether_o or_o no_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o universal_a power_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o till_o it_o be_v fair_o determine_v it_o be_v but_o to_o make_v too_o much_o haste_n and_o pervert_v due_a order_n to_o fall_v upon_o the_o question_n quid_fw-la sit_fw-la and_o dispute_v wherein_o it_o consist_v and_o how_o far_o it_o extend_v second_o we_o answer_v the_o point_n of_o kill_a king_n be_v a_o most_o false_a and_o scandalous_a imputation_n for_o what_o pope_n ever_o kill_v or_o give_v command_v warrant_v or_o authority_n for_o the_o kill_n of_o any_o king_n or_o what_o catholic_a author_n ever_o teach_v that_o he_o have_v power_n from_o christ_n so_o to_o do_v and_o as_o for_o depose_v they_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v no_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o do_v it_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o my_o task_n to_o dispute_v it_o but_o what_o protestant_n have_v both_o do_v and_o justify_v in_o the_o worst_a of_o these_o kind_n be_v but_o too_o fresh_a in_o memory_n 4._o a._n c._n do_v not_o beg_v the_o question_n when_o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o 18._o rome_n shall_v never_o refuse_v to_o feed_v and_o govern_v the_o whole_a flock_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o no_o particular_a man_n or_o church_n shall_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o make_v a_o separation_n from_o it_o see_v it_o be_v the_o clear_a inference_n of_o his_o precedent_a discourse_n it_o be_v rather_o a_o beg_v the_o question_n in_o his_o lordship_n to_o tell_v we_o only_o while_o he_o ought_v to_o prove_v it_o that_o protestant_n have_v make_v no_o separation_n from_o the_o general_n church_n but_o only_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o such_o other_o church_n as_o by_o adhere_v to_o she_o have_v hazard_v themselves_o and_o do_v now_o miscall_a themselves_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n it_o be_v also_o in_o this_o case_n a_o beg_v the_o question_n to_o affirm_v the_o roman-catholique_a church_n to_o be_v in_o error_n since_o no_o man_n do_v ever_o grant_v his_o lordship_n that_o she_o be_v so_o or_o have_v he_o any_o where_o convince_v she_o of_o error_n he_o have_v often_o say_v it_o and_o suppose_v it_o i_o know_v but_o where_o he_o have_v prove_v it_o i_o know_v not_o it_o be_v therefore_o yet_o to_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o roman-catholique_a church_n have_v err_v in_o any_o doctrine_n public_o define_v by_o she_o again_o we_o deny_v there_o be_v any_o hazard_n in_o adhere_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n she_o be_v the_o unshaken_a rock_n of_o truth_n and_o sole_o able_a to_o show_v a_o continual_a succession_n of_o lawfully-sent_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n from_o christ_n to_o our_o present_a time_n who_o have_v hitherto_o teach_v the_o same_o unchanged_a doctrine_n and_o shall_v infallible_o according_a to_o christ_n promise_n continue_v so_o teach_v it_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n from_o this_o only_a catholic_a church_n protestant_n have_v unhappy_o sever_v themselves_o as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v 14._o and_o be_v through_o their_o own_o fault_n so_o absolute_o deprive_v of_o all_o communion_n with_o she_o that_o they_o can_v no_o more_o be_v esteem_v member_n of_o this_o church_n in_o the_o condition_n they_o now_o stand_v than_o a_o wither_a branch_n can_v be_v account_v a_o part_n of_o the_o tree_n from_o which_o it_o be_v break_v in_o vain_a therefore_o do_v the_o relatour_n pretend_v that_o protestant_n have_v not_o leave_v the_o church_n in_o her_o essence_n but_o in_o her_o error_n the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o her_o faith_n sacrament_n discipline_n in_o all_o these_o it_o be_v too_o manifest_a to_o be_v deny_v protestant_n have_v forsake_v the_o church_n yea_o and_o perpetual_o fight_v against_o she_o wherefore_o they_o have_v leave_v she_o in_o thing_n essential_a or_o pertain_v to_o the_o life_n and_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o call_v these_o essential_o error_n which_o be_v a_o bold_a and_o erroneous_a presumption_n wherein_o they_o imitate_v no_o less_o the_o old_a heretic_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n of_o the_o church_n viz._n the_o novatian_o arian_n nestorian_n etc._n etc._n then_o the_o swarm_n of_o new_a sectary_n among_o themselves_o for_o which_o of_o all_o these_o do_v not_o or_o will_v not_o upon_o occasion_n plead_v they_o forsake_v not_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n but_o her_o error_n they_o separate_v not_o from_o her_o communion_n but_o corruption_n 5._o well_o but_o after_o all_o dispute_v a_o man_n will_v imagine_v that_o our_o learned_a antagonist_n will_v at_o length_n submit_v to_o a_o general_n council_n for_o first_o he_o thus_o profess_v speak_v to_o a._n c._n what_o great_a or_o sure_a 1._o judgement_n you_o can_v have_v where_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v doubt_v than_o a_o general_n council_n i_o do_v not_o see_v and_o immediate_o after_o he_o cite_v a_o long_a text_n of_o a._n c_n which_o speak_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o if_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o pray_v unanimous_o for_o the_o promise_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v great_a and_o diligent_a search_n and_o examination_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o hear_v each_o pastor_n declare_v what_o have_v be_v the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o this_o church_n shall_v thereupon_o decree_v some_o particular_a point_n or_o matter_n to_o be_v hold_v for_o divine_a truth_n if_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o general_a council_n may_v err_v in_o such_o a_o decree_n what_o can_v be_v firm_a or_o certain_a upon_o earth_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o he_o both_o profess_v that_o it_o seem_v fair_a and_o also_o free_o grant_v that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v the_o best_a judge_n on_o earth_n for_o controversy_n of_o faith_n where_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v doubt_v this_o will_v make_v a_o man_n think_v the_o bishop_n intend_v to_o conform_v himself_o to_o such_o a_o decree_n but_o to_o the_o end_n all_o the_o world_n may_v see_v how_o unwilling_o he_o yield_v to_o reason_n especial_o when_o it_o come_v from_o a_o adversary_n he_o present_o again_o begin_v to_o quarrel_v with_o a._n c._n tell_v we_o there_o be_v never_o any_o such_o general_n council_n call_v nor_o indeed_o possible_a to_o be_v call_v as_o a._n c._n speak_v of_o viz._n in_o which_o all_o pastor_n be_v gather_v together_o as_o if_o a._n c._n be_v so_o simple_a as_o by_o all_o pastor_n to_o understand_v numerical_o and_o individual_o all_o that_o be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o without_o exception_n and_o that_o a_o council_n can_v not_o be_v think_v sufficient_o general_n nor_o a_o obligatory_a decree_n of_o faith_n be_v make_v by_o it_o unless_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v gather_v together_o especial_o he_o have_v so_o clear_o declare_v his_o meaning_n to_o the_o contrary_a in_o defend_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o have_v be_v a_o true_a general_n council_n where_o it_o be_v manifest_a all_o pastor_n whatsoever_o do_v not_o convene_v though_o there_o be_v as_o many_o as_o have_v meet_v in_o some_o other_o general_a council_n esteem_v even_o by_o protestant_n for_o such_o and_o strange_a it_o be_v to_o see_v how_o long_o the_o relatour_n skirmish_n with_o mere_a shadow_n and_o what_o inference_n he_o make_v mere_o upon_o this_o most_o salsly-supposed_a and_o wholly-improbable_a sense_n of_o a._n c_n word_n all_o pastor_n then_o in_o that_o text_n of_o a._n c._n signify_v no_o more_o than_o all_o that_o be_v requisite_a or_o so_o many_o of_o all_o as_o be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o reason_n and_o christian_a prudence_n due_o sufficient_a to_o constitute_v a_o true_a and_o lawful_a general_n council_n if_o so_o many_o lawful_o call_v be_v gather_v together_o it_o be_v the_o all_z that_o a._n c._n intend_v and_o
st._n peter_n person_n only_o but_o his_o faith_n conjoin_v with_o his_o person_n or_o his_o person_n confess_v and_o assert_v the_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o father_n speak_v in_o this_o sense_n and_o no_o other_o when_o they_o say_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o st._n peter_n faith_n 10._o bellarmin_n prove_v by_o a_o whole_a jury_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a among_o they_o and_o most_o of_o they_o the_o same_o the_o bishop_n here_o pretend_v to_o bring_v for_o himself_o beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n consist_v of_o above_o six_o hundred_o 3._o catholic_a bishop_n as_o to_o what_o he_o assert_n that_o by_o hell-gates-prevailing_a against_o the_o church_n be_v not_o understand_v principal_o the_o church_n not_o err_v but_o her_o not_o ibidem_fw-la fall_v away_o from_o the_o foundation_n we_o have_v already_o 14._o full_o prove_v the_o contrary_a both_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n and_o solid_a reason_n show_v that_o if_o any_o error_n in_o faith_n can_v be_v admit_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n may_v in_o such_o case_n be_v absolute_o say_v to_o have_v prevail_v against_o she_o contrary_a to_o this_o promise_n of_o christ._n and_o how_o bellarmin_n here_o cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v when_o he_o say_v there_o be_v many_o thing_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la which_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v already_o 2._o show_v where_o we_o also_o prove_v that_o every_o error_n in_o faith_n contrary_a to_o what_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a but_o the_o relatour_n as_o if_o his_o own_o word_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n tell_v we_o final_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o this_o stable_a edification_n ibidem_fw-la be_v make_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n not_o to_o a_o council_n why_o not_o to_o both_o i_o pray_v to_o a_o general_n council_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o church_n the_o truth_n be_v it_o be_v make_v neither_o to_o church_n nor_o council_n direct_o and_o immediate_o but_o to_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n as_o the_o father_n above_o mention_a show_n though_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n viz._n her_o preservation_n from_o error_n in_o faith_n which_o moral_o can_v not_o be_v effect_v if_o a_o general_n council_n lawful_o call_v and_o confirm_v by_o st._n peter_n successor_n be_v not_o infallible_a or_o exempt_v from_o error_n in_o its_o decision_n of_o faith_n to_o what_o the_o bishop_n conclude_v with_o upon_o this_o text_n that_o a_o council_n have_v no_o interest_n in_o this_o promise_a edification_n further_o than_o it_o build_v upon_o christ_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n christ_n deliver_v the_o rule_n he_o give_v and_o the_o promise_v he_o make_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n we_o agree_v with_o he_o but_o that_o a_o general_n council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n do_v ever_o reject_v or_o go_v contrary_a to_o these_o we_o absolute_o deny_v to_o the_o four_o place_n viz._n of_o christ_n prayer_n for_o st._n peter_n that_o his_o 5._o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v luke_n 22._o 32._o the_o relatour_n will_v have_v the_o native_a sense_n of_o it_o to_o be_v that_o christ_n pray_v and_o obtain_v for_o st._n peter_n perseverance_n in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n against_o the_o strong_a temptation_n which_o be_v to_o winnow_v he_o above_o the_o rest_n and_o you_o must_v take_v it_o if_o you_o please_v upon_o his_o bare_a word_n that_o by_o faith_n be_v here_o mean_v grace_n have_v the_o bishop_n weigh_v the_o pregnancy_n of_o 3._o beauties_n reason_n in_o confutation_n of_o this_o exposition_n he_o can_v not_o sure_o have_v be_v so_o positive_a in_o it_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o unnecessary_a prolixity_n to_o insert_v they_o here_o where_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o observe_v the_o contradiction_n involve_v in_o this_o pretend_a native_a sense_n of_o christ_n prayer_n christ_n according_a to_o the_o bishop_n obtain_v for_o st._n peter_n that_o he_o shall_v persevere_v in_o grace_n but_o st._n peter_n do_v not_o still_o persevere_v in_o grace_n for_o he_o lose_v it_o when_o he_o commit_v that_o enormous_a sin_n of_o deny_v his_o master_n therefore_o christ_n obtain_v and_o do_v not_o obtain_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n of_o his_o eternal_a father_n which_o be_v a_o formal_a contradiction_n our_o saviour_n therefore_o pray_v according_a to_o his_o own_o expression_n in_o scripture_n that_o st._n peter_n may_v not_o lose_v faith_n by_o a_o internal_a act_n of_o disbelief_n though_o the_o devil_n shall_v so_o far_o prevail_v by_o his_o temptation_n as_o to_o make_v he_o say_v contrary_a to_o his_o own_o knowledge_n i_o know_v not_o the_o man_n you_o have_v take_v prisoner_n but_o the_o bishop_n object_n thus_o against_o this_o text_n to_o conclude_v a_o infallibility_n ibidem_fw-la hence_o in_o the_o pope_n or_o in_o his_o chair_n or_o in_o the_o roman_a sea_n or_o in_o a_o general_n council_n though_o the_o pope_n be_v precedent_n i_o find_v no_o ancient_a father_n that_o dare_v adventure_v it_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o they_o do_v not_o sinde_v who_o be_v unwilling_a to_o see_v bellarmin_n cite_v and_o that_o out_o of_o decretal_a authentic_a record_n whatever_o the_o bishop_n mutter_v against_o they_o as_o etc._n counterfeit_n without_o the_o least_o proof_n lucius_n felix_n st._n leo_n and_o petrus_n chrysologus_fw-la the_o last_o of_o which_o live_v above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n ago_o these_o i_o say_v bellarmin_n affirm_v to_o have_v adventure_v to_o prove_v from_o this_o text_n what_o the_o bishop_n deny_v and_o though_o the_o three_o first_o of_o these_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o such_o be_v their_o sanctity_n and_o learning_n as_o may_v well_o vindicate_v they_o from_o the_o least_o jealousy_n of_o challenge_v either_o through_o ignorance_n or_o ambition_n more_o than_o of_o right_n belong_v to_o their_o office_n nay_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o confess_o orthodox_n in_o their_o day_n that_o even_o dr._n heylin_n a_o man_n bitter_a against_o catholic_n think_v it_o not_o fit_a in_o his_o geography_n to_o term_v the_o roman_a bishop_n pope_n till_o almost_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o st._n leo_n the_o last_o of_o the_o three_o and_o as_o for_o chrysologus_fw-la his_o contemporary_a and_o no_o pope_n he_o adventure_v as_o it_o be_v to_o ground_v the_o infallibility_n we_o plead_v for_o upon_o this_o text_n 〈◊〉_d when_o he_o say_v st._n peter_n as_o yet_o life_n and_o preside_v in_o his_o sea_n and_o afford_v the_o true_a faith_n to_o those_o that_o seek_v it_o which_o speech_n the_o bishop_n will_v have_v to_o be_v but_o a_o flash_n of_o rhetoric_n a_o easy_a way_n of_o answer_v the_o most_o unanswerable_a authority_n have_v chrysologus_fw-la write_v or_o address_v his_o word_n to_o the_o pope_n there_o may_v have_v be_v some_o colour_n for_o the_o evasion_n but_o speak_v they_o to_o a_o heretic_n who_o he_o seek_v to_o reduce_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o can_v imagine_v he_o intend_v to_o compliment_v the_o pope_n nothing_o but_o a_o weak_a cause_n can_v drive_v so_o learned_a a_o person_n as_o the_o bishop_n to_o so_o poor_a a_o shift_n so_o the_o testimony_n of_o theophylact_fw-mi and_o st._n bernard_n be_v slight_v by_o ibidem_fw-la he_o as_o man_n of_o yesterday_o though_o they_o live_v the_o one_o above_o five_o hundred_o the_o other_o near_o six_o hundred_o year_n ago_o but_o whoever_o charge_v st._n bernard_n with_o corrupt_a doctrine_n either_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n may_v as_o just_o charge_n st._n austin_n and_o the_o father_n of_o his_o time_n in_o which_o time_n even_o by_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o 3._o calvin_n when_o he_o be_v sober_a the_o the_o church_n have_v make_v no_o departure_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o for_o 21._o theophylact_fw-mi he_o be_v a_o greek_a bishop_n and_o of_o the_o forward_a in_o side_v against_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o in_o tax_v she_o of_o error_n touch_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o can_v be_v rational_o imagine_v but_o what_o he_o speak_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v extort_a from_o he_o by_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o know_a consent_n of_o all_o catholic_a christian_n in_o that_o particular_a as_o to_o the_o gloss_n upon_o the_o canon_n law_n i_o answer_v it_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o personal_a capacity_n as_o a_o private_a doctor_n in_o which_o quality_n it_o be_v not_o deny_v but_o he_o may_v possible_o err_v even_o in_o faith_n hence_o may_v easy_o be_v perceive_v how_o unsatisfactory_o the_o bishop_n endeavour_v to_o elude_v the_o force_n of_o this_o text_n concern_v christ_n prayer_n for_o st._n peter_n which_o i_o have_v 17._o already_o prove_v to_o be_v extend_v to_o his_o successor_n
the_o sea_n apostolic_a touch_v the_o matter_n and_o by_o consequence_n do_v not_o in_o this_o case_n so_o full_o represent_v the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o this_o further_a confirmation_n be_v necessary_a in_o this_o therefore_o and_o in_o all_o other_o like_o case_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o pope_n do_v actual_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o general_n council_n to_o make_v they_o infallible_a or_o that_o it_o may_v be_v infallible_o certain_a to_o we_o that_o such_o or_o such_o a_o general_n council_n err_v not_o in_o any_o of_o its_o definition_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n so_o that_o exclusive_o to_o the_o pope_n consent_n or_o confirmation_n we_o can_v never_o be_v infallible_o certain_a which_o have_v happen_v till_o the_o pope_n join_v and_o add_v his_o confirmation_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n we_o may_v express_v the_o matter_n in_o some_o sort_n by_o the_o king_n consent_n to_o act_n of_o parliament_n le_fw-fr roy_fw-fr veut_fw-fr add_v to_o a_o bill_n present_v from_o both_o house_n make_v it_o a_o bind_a law_n to_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n which_o before_o it_o be_v not_o so_o the_o pope_n consent_n or_o confirmation_n add_v to_o the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n make_v they_o article_n of_o christian_a belief_n no_o long_o now_o to_o be_v question_v much_o less_o contradict_v by_o any_o but_o absolute_o to_o be_v believe_v with_o infallible_a faith_n now_o this_o presuppose_a we_o answer_v the_o relatours_n argument_n direct_o thus_o to_o the_o first_o part_n of_o it_o if_o the_o council_n err_v etc._n etc._n we_o agree_v with_o he_o the_o pope_n ought_v not_o to_o confirm_v the_o decree_n add_v more_o over_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a he_o shall_v confirm_v it_o and_o to_o the_o second_o viz._n that_o if_o it_o err_v not_o than_o the_o definition_n be_v true_a before_o the_o pope_n confirm_v it_o we_o confess_v this_o also_o for_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n make_v not_o the_o definition_n to_o be_v true_a in_o itself_o but_o it_o make_v we_o infallible_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v true_a god_n revelation_n itself_o towitt_v of_o the_o thing_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n make_v they_o not_o to_o be_v true_a in_o themselves_o for_o so_o they_o be_v and_o be_v whether_o he_o have_v reveal_v they_o or_o no_o but_o it_o make_v they_o infallible_a truth_n to_o we_o or_o such_o truth_n as_o both_o may_v and_o must_v be_v infallible_o believe_v by_o christian_n so_o we_o say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o general_n council_n be_v true_a in_o itself_o before_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o sufficient_o and_o infallible_o declare_v that_o it_o can_v be_v believe_v with_o a_o act_n of_o true_a christian_a faith_n that_o prerogative_n belong_v to_o decree_n of_o general_n council_n only_o as_o they_o include_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o otherwise_o but_o whereas_o then_o the_o bishop_n infer_v that_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n add_v nothing_o but_o only_o his_o own_o consent_n to_o the_o council_n decree_n we_o utter_o deny_v the_o consequence_n especial_o understand_v it_o in_o the_o relatours_n sense_n viz._n for_o no_o more_o than_o the_o assent_n of_o some_o other_o single_a bishop_n or_o patriarch_n for_o we_o aver_v that_o it_o be_v the_o assent_n of_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o complete_n and_o give_v full_a force_n to_o the_o act_n of_o such_o council_n and_o also_o that_o it_o 〈◊〉_d infallibility_n or_o absolute_a certainty_n of_o truth_n to_o all_o their_o decree_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o sure_o be_v more_o than_o nothing_o 3._o well_o but_o now_o the_o relatour_n advance_v again_o with_o his_o instance_n to_o wit_n of_o pretend_a error_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o general_n council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n thence_o conclude_v against_o we_o that_o even_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n do_v not_o make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o such_o council_n infallible_a the_o error_n 〈◊〉_d object_n be_v against_o the_o ibidem_fw-la council_n of_o lateran_n confirm_v by_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o where_o it_o teach_v that_o christ_n be_v present_a by_o way_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o as_o the_o bishop_n affirm_v be_v never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o church_n before_o this_o council_n nor_o can_v it_o say_v he_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o take_v proper_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n but_o first_o what_o a_o strange_a manner_n of_o proceed_v be_v this_o to_o assert_v a_o point_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n without_o solue_v or_o so_o much_o as_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o pregnant_a proof_n our_o author_n bring_v both_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o father_n to_o the_o contrary_a of_o what_o he_o so_o main_o affirm_v the_o relatour_n shall_v not_o have_v say_v but_o prove_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v a_o error_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o not_o consistent_a with_o the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n at_o least_o he_o shall_v have_v clear_v his_o own_o assertion_n and_o in_o some_o manner_n or_o other_o have_v explain_v how_o transubstantiation_n may_v be_v take_v improper_o as_o his_o word_n insinuate_v but_o sure_o this_o be_v a_o conception_n of_o the_o bishop_n so_o new_a and_o singular_a that_o it_o will_v hardly_o find_v any_o defendant_n of_o all_o the_o word_n which_o the_o church_n use_v to_o express_v her_o sense_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o true_a religion_n there_o be_v none_o methinks_v less_o apt_a to_o be_v pervert_v to_o a_o metaphorical_a or_o figurative_a sense_n than_o this_o of_o transubstantiation_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o this_o term_n or_o word_n transubstantiation_n be_v first_o public_o authorize_v in_o the_o say_a council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d as_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereby_o our_o saviour_n eternal_a and_o consubstantial_a deity_n be_v signify_v be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o in_o like_a manner_n express_v the_o mystery_n of_o his_o divine_a incarnation_n be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n but_o for_o the_o thing_n itself_o signify_v by_o this_o term_n which_o be_v a_o real_a conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n it_o be_v clear_a enough_o that_o it_o be_v ever_o hold_v for_o a_o divine_a truth_n witness_v s._n dom._n cyprian_n or_o at_o least_o a_o author_n of_o those_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n say_v this_o common_a bread_n change_v into_o flesh_n and_o blood_n give_v life_n and_o again_o the_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n be_v change_v not_o in_o its_o outward_a form_n or_o semblance_n but_o in_o its_o inward_a nature_n or_o substance_n for_o so_o the_o word_n nature_n must_v and_o do_v always_o signify_v when_o it_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o accident_n or_o quality_n of_o any_o thing_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n witness_v st._n gregory_n nyssen_n 37._o with_o good_a reason_n do_v we_o believe_v say_v he_o that_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v sanctify_v by_o god_n word_n viz._n the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o word-god_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n we_o see_v be_v transelemented_a into_o he_o what_o can_v here_o be_v fignify_v by_o transelementation_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o outward_a element_n but_o what_o the_o church_n now_o style_v transubstantiation_n witness_v s._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o these_o word_n 4._o he_o that_o change_a water_n into_o wine_n by_o his_o sole_a will_n at_o cana_n in_o galilee_n do_v he_o not_o deserve_v our_o belief_n that_o he_o have_v also_o change_v wine_n into_o bloued_a wherefore_o let_v we_o receive_v with_o all_o assurance_n of_o faith_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n see_v under_o the_o species_n or_o form_n of_o bread_n the_o body_n be_v give_v and_o under_o the_o species_n or_o form_n of_o wine_n his_o blood_n be_v give_v etc._n etc._n know_v and_o hold_v for_o certain_a that_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o see_v be_v not_o bread_n though_o it_o seem_v to_o the_o taste_n to_o be_v bread_n but_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n likewise_o that_o the_o wine_n which_o we_o see_v though_o to_o the_o sense_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v wine_n be_v not_o wine_n for_o all_o that_o but_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ._n be_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o catholic_n to_o express_v his_o own_o or_o the_o church_n belief_n of_o this_o mystery_n in_o more_o full_a plain_a and_o effectual_a term_n witness_v also_o s._n ambrose_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n right_o consecrate_v 〈◊〉_d say_v it_o be_v
according_a to_o the_o common_a sense_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n whatsoever_o origen_n teach_v in_o other_o place_n certain_a it_o be_v exod._n in_o the_o place_n allege_v by_o bellarmin_n he_o teach_v no_o such_o heresy_n speak_v there_o only_o of_o soul_n be_v expiate_v from_o light_n and_o venial_a sin_n which_o do_v not_o deserve_v hell_n or_o damnation_n eternal_a these_o he_o style_v aliquid_fw-la de_fw-la specie_fw-la plumby_fw-mi they_o be_v in_o faithful_a soul_n as_o a_o mixture_n of_o lead_n or_o some_o base_a metal_n in_o gold_n soul_n be_v defile_v by_o they_o and_o then_o put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o those_o soul_n which_o have_v much_o gold_n and_o but_o small_a quantity_n of_o lead_n and_o such_o as_o have_v much_o lead_n and_o but_o little_a gold_n he_o say_v of_o they_o both_o that_o they_o shall_v after_o this_o life_n be_v purge_v by_o fire_n more_o or_o less_o for_o a_o long_o or_o short_a time_n of_o pain_n according_a as_o they_o have_v more_o or_o less_o lead_v that_o be_v vice_n and_o sin_n to_o be_v purge_v in_o they_o but_o for_o other_o viz._n such_o as_o be_v all_o lead_n and_o have_v no_o gold_n that_o be_v no_o true_a merit_n of_o virtue_n and_o grace_n in_o they_o they_o say_v origen_n shall_v sink_v down_o into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n for_o ever_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o discourse_n in_o that_o place_n and_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o clear_o for_o purgatory_n in_o the_o four_o and_o five_o age_n bellarmin_n bring_v more_o plenty_n of_o authority_n and_o the_o relatour_n be_v please_v to_o call_v these_o the_o great_a and_o learned_a age_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o sure_o the_o less_o subject_a to_o be_v seduce_v and_o lead_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n by_o any_o private_a false_a doctrine_n of_o heretic_n 36._o st._n ambrose_n be_v plain_a enough_o for_o purgatory_n for_o speak_v of_o what_o happen_v to_o the_o dead_a after_o this_o life_n he_o say_v some_o shall_v be_v save_v as_o by_o fire_n allude_v manifest_o to_o those_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 3._o if_o any_o man_n work_n burn_v he_o shall_v suffer_v detriment_n but_o he_o himself_o shall_v be_v save_v yet_o so_o as_o by_o fire_n but_o the_o word_n in_o st._n ambrose_n as_o by_o fire_n at_o which_o the_o bishop_n will_v seem_v to_o stumble_v and_o pretend_v difficulty_n relate_v not_o so_o much_o to_o the_o thing_n or_o fire_v itself_o as_o if_o st._n ambrose_n mean_v not_o ibidem_fw-la true_a fire_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o true_o and_o real_o to_o be_v pass_v through_o save_v only_o in_o way_n of_o similitude_n or_o figure_n but_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o person_n to_o wit_n of_o he_o that_o do_v pass_v through_o it_o signify_v that_o those_o who_o be_v cleanse_v after_o this_o life_n be_v not_o burn_v up_o supra_fw-la and_o quite_o destroy_v by_o fire_n as_o those_o in_o hell_n be_v over_o who_o that_o fire_n prevail_v for_o ever_o but_o only_o that_o they_o suffer_v detriment_n for_o a_o while_n like_v he_o that_o pass_v through_o fire_n and_o in_o his_o passage_n have_v his_o hair_n and_o garment_n singe_v thus_o i_o say_v it_o be_v that_o st._n ambrose_n teach_v some_o be_v save_v quasi_fw-la per_fw-la ignem_fw-la as_o by_o fire_n i_o add_v that_o suppose_v st._n ambrose_n by_o his_o quasi_fw-la per_fw-la ignem_fw-la do_v not_o intend_v to_o signify_v true_a and_o material_a fire_n but_o only_o metaphorical_a as_o pain_n analogical_a to_o fire_n yet_o it_o will_v not_o thence_o follow_v that_o he_o intend_v not_o to_o signify_v purgatory_n since_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v matter_n of_o necessary_a belief_n that_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n be_v torment_v by_o fire_n in_o that_o sense_n but_o only_o that_o they_o endure_v pain_n and_o dolour_n there_o by_o which_o they_o be_v purge_v and_o which_o for_o their_o extremity_n be_v not_o unfitt_o according_a to_o scripture_n phrase_n express_v and_o signify_v by_o fire_n what_o ever_o the_o mean_n or_o immediate_a instrument_n be_v by_o which_o god_n inflict_v they_o see_v council_n florentin_n in_o lit_fw-fr union_n likewise_o st._n ambrose_n in_o his_o oration_n upon_o the_o death_n of_o that_o good_a emperor_n theodosius_n where_o he_o pray_v for_o his_o soul_n in_o these_o word_n give_v rest_n to_o thy_o servant_n theodosius_n that_o rest_n which_o thou_o have_v theodos._n prepare_v for_o thy_o saint_n and_o prosess_v out_o of_o great_a affection_n to_o he_o that_o he_o will_v never_o leave_v so_o pray_v day_n nor_o night_n till_o by_o his_o prayer_n and_o tear_n he_o have_v bring_v he_o to_o the_o place_n whither_o his_o merit_n call_v he_o to_o the_o holy_a mountain_n where_o be_v life_n everlasting_a if_o you_o object_n that_o st._n ambrose_n in_o this_o very_a oration_n profess_v to_o believe_v that_o theodosius_n be_v already_o in_o heaven_n i_o answer_v out_o of_o his_o charity_n he_o may_v hope_v so_o know_v how_o good_a a_o christian_a that_o emperor_n be_v yet_o not_o be_v certain_a of_o it_o he_o hold_v it_o necessary_a as_o we_o see_v and_o agreeable_a to_o christian_a piety_n to_o pray_v for_o he_o which_o clear_o rather_o confum_n than_o overthrow_n the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n st._n hierome_n also_o be_v nce_n less_o plain_a for_o a_o purge_a fire_n after_o this_o life_n yea_o so_o express_o that_o he_o make_v it_o to_o differ_v from_o that_o of_o hell_n only_o because_o through_o this_o they_o pass_v as_o the_o israelite_n do_v through_o the_o red_a sea_n but_o through_o that_o of_o hell_n none_o pass_v but_o all_o with_o the_o fine_a egyptidn_n be_v drown_v therein_o and_o perish_v eternal_o as_o for_o the_o word_n arbitramur_fw-la which_o the_o relatour_n catch_v at_o as_o if_o st._n hierome_n thereby_o deliver_v only_o his_o own_o private_a and_o but_o conjectural_a opinion_n and_o not_o any_o matter_n of_o christian_a belief_n we_o answer_v arbiramur_fw-la do_v not_o always_o signify_v opinion_n or_o doubt_v but_o simple_o a_o man_n sense_n or_o judgement_n in_o whatsoever_o matter_n or_o question_v propound_v as_o every_o common_a lexicon_n may_v have_v inform_v he_o do_v the_o word_n signify_v no_o more_o than_o mere_a opinion_n in_o that_o text_n of_o st._n paul_n philip._n 2._o non_fw-la rapinam_fw-la arbitratus_n est_fw-la esse_fw-la se_fw-la aequalem_fw-la deo_fw-la etc_fw-la and_o will_v not_o the_o bishop_n think_v you_o have_v be_v shrewd_o put_v to_o it_o to_o find_v a_o proof_n for_o iustificationby_n payth_v be_v only_o shall_v that_o of_o rom._n 3._o 28._o have_v be_v wrest_v from_o he_o in_o this_o manner_n st._n paul_n be_v here_o only_o at_o his_o arbitramur_fw-la we_o think_v that_o a_o man_n be_v iustisy_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n he_o deliver_v not_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o his_o private_a opinion_n leave_v it_o sree_a for_o other_o man_n to_o think_v otherwise_o if_o they_o see_v cause_n however_o the_o reader_n shall_v do_v well_o to_o take_v a_o little_a notice_n of_o the_o bishop_n double_v here_o he_o make_v a_o show_n of_o answer_v the_o text_n which_o bellarmin_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o father_n to_o prove_v purgatory_n but_o in_o stead_n of_o perform_v punctual_o what_o he_o pretend_v be_v content_a to_o pass_v by_o many_o of_o they_o and_o to_o frame_v a_o answer_n only_o to_o some_o few_o which_o he_o think_v fit_a can_v any_o reason_n be_v conceive_v of_o 〈◊〉_d proceed_n but_o only_o that_o he_o find_v the_o omit_v place_n too_o hot_a for_o he_o and_o not_o capable_a of_o any_o colourable_a pervert_v let_v the_o reader_n judge_v in_o part_n by_o this_o one_o of_o st_n hierome_n which_o to_o that_o end_n be_v here_o present_v in_o the_o margin_n verbatim_o as_o it_o stand_v and_o shall_v have_v be_v answer_v in_o bellarmin_n pelagian_a si_fw-la autem_fw-la origenes_n etc_n what_o be_v it_o to_o we_o say_v st._n hierome_n if_o origen_n teach_v that_o all_o reasonable_a creature_n whatsoever_o shall_v be_v save_v at_o last_o and_o that_o even_o the_o devil_n shall_v come_v to_o repentance_n see_v we_o hold_v no_o such_o matter_n but_o confess_v that_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o minister_n be_v damn_v for_o ever_o and_o that_o all_o wicked_a impenitent_a sinner_n shall_v likewise_o eternal_o perish_v and_o that_o such_o christian_n only_o as_o be_v prevent_v in_o sin_n that_o be_v die_v before_o they_o have_v do_v full_a and_o perfect_a penance_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o which_o they_o have_v true_o repent_v shall_v be_v sive_v after_o a_o time_n of_o punishment_n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v what_o he_o say_v in_o his_o commentary_n prou._n upon_o the_o proverb_n where_o he_o plain_o avouch_v that_o the_o faithful_a after_o death_n may_v be_v absolve_v from_o light_a sin_n in_o which_o they_o die_v
also_o do_v the_o same_o with_o st._n philip_n chrysostome_n yea_o once_o again_o we_o challenge_v our_o adversary_n to_o nominate_v if_o they_o can_v any_o one_o ancient_a father_n or_o christian_a writer_n that_o ever_o note_v this_o a_o error_n or_o private_a doctrine_n in_o origen_n that_o he_o teach_v purgatory_n or_o that_o in_o any_o sort_n intimate_v he_o to_o have_v be_v the_o author_n or_o inventour_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o the_o world_n know_v origen_n error_n and_o private_a opinion_n be_v diligent_o note_v by_o antiquity_n but_o this_o it_o be_v sure_a enough_o our_o adversary_n can_v never_o do_v and_o therefore_o let_v no_o man_n think_v it_o unreasonable_a in_o we_o that_o we_o still_o confident_o presume_v and_o assert_v that_o this_o doctrine_n have_v no_o beginning_n assignable_a and_o consequent_o according_a to_o st._n augustine_n rule_n above_o mention_v be_v to_o be_v think_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n 14._o it_o be_v therefore_o firm_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o catholic_n that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n yea_o we_o be_v as_o much_o bind_v to_o believe_v it_o as_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v for_o instance_n the_o trinity_n of_o incarnation_n itself_o if_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o speak_v be_v mean_v only_o that_o we_o can_v no_o more_o lawful_o or_o without_o sin_n and_o peril_n of_o damnation_n deny_v or_o question_v this_o doctrine_n be_v once_o know_v by_o the_o church_n definition_n to_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o pertain_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n than_o we_o may_v deny_v or_o question_v the_o say_a article_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n though_o we_o confess_v there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o necessity_n or_o obligation_n for_o all_o man_n to_o know_v the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o or_o to_o have_v explicit_a belief_n of_o one_o as_o of_o the_o other_o nor_o can_v i_o doubt_v but_o the_o bishop_n himself_o will_v have_v confess_v in_o the_o sense_n above_o mention_v that_o we_o be_v as_o much_o bind_v not_o to_o disbeleeve_v any_o thing_n even_o of_o least_o moment_n contain_v in_o scripture_n when_o we_o know_v it_o to_o be_v there_o contain_v as_o to_o believe_v the_o say_v article_n and_o as_o this_o be_v far_o from_o be_v esteem_v blasphemy_n by_o any_o good_a christian_n so_o be_v the_o other_o if_o right_o understand_v chap._n 26._o the_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o christian_a faith_n confess_v yet_o subvert_v by_o the_o bishop_n argument_n 1._o why_o no_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n define_v by_o general_n council_n may_v be_v deliberate_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o 2._o a._n c._n do_v not_o teach_v that_o every_o catholic_a priest_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n able_a to_o preach_v be_v infallible_a 3._o jnfallibility_n in_o teach_v how_o right_o infer_v by_o he_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n assistance_n 4._o to_o what_o intent_n our_o janiour_n leave_v the_o prerogative_n of_o infallibility_n in_o his_o church_n 5._o no_o certain_a mean_n in_o our_o adversary_n principle_n to_o be_v assure_v that_o a_o general_n council_n err_v in_o one_o point_n do_v not_o err_v in_o all_o 6._o the_o relatour_n by_o allow_v private_a person_n to_o examine_v the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n allow_v they_o in_o effect_n to_o judge_v and_o censure_v they_o 7._o posteriour_a council_n no_o less_o necessary_a for_o the_o infallible_a determination_n of_o controverted_a point_n of_o faith_n than_o the_o four_o first_o 8._o infallible_a assurance_n requisite_a in_o superstructure_n as_o well_o as_o point_n fundamental_a 9_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o relatours_n reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a 10._o no_o help_n for_o he_o from_o st._n thomas_n and_o our_o author_n touch_v the_o extent_n of_o necessary_a point_n 11._o his_o nugatory_n descant_v upon_o word_n 1._o thus_o much_o for_o purgatory_n it_o be_v time_n now_o that_o we_o return_v again_o to_o a._n c._n who_o give_v his_o adversary_n a_o why_o no_o man_n may_v deliberate_o doubt_v of_o much_o less_o deny_v any_o thing_n define_v by_o a_o general_n council_n viz._n because_o every_o such_o doubt_n be_v a_o breach_n from_o the_o one_o save_v faith_n in_o that_o it_o take_v away_o infallible_a credit_n from_o the_o church_n so_o as_o the_o divine_a revelation_n be_v not_o sufficient_o apply_v it_o can_v according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o 28_o god_n providence_n breed_v infallible_a faith_n in_o us._n in_o answer_n whereto_o the_o bishop_n insist_o whole_o upon_o principle_n already_o confute_v viz._n that_o deliberate_o to_o doubt_v and_o deny_v what_o be_v define_v by_o general_n council_n do_v not_o take_v away_o infallible_a credit_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o contrary_a whereof_o we_o have_v often_o show_v in_o this_o 23._o treatise_n likewise_o he_o tell_v we_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v safe_a so_o long_o as_o she_o be_v hold_v infallible_a in_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o absolute_o necessary_a thing_n neither_o himself_o nor_o any_o body_n else_o can_v ever_o yet_o resolve_v we_o what_o they_o be_v or_o how_o to_o know_v they_o and_o beside_o see_v he_o teach_v that_o all_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a we_o shall_v have_v need_n of_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n now_o or_o hereafter_o to_o believe_v any_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n again_o if_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v in_o point_n not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n no_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v but_o it_o may_v also_o err_v in_o deliver_v and_o interpret_n any_o particular_a text_n of_o scripture_n which_o contain_v matter_n or_o doctrine_n not_o absolute_o necessary_a which_o suppose_v it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o we_o can_v believe_v with_o certain_a infallible_a and_o divine_a faith_n any_o thing_n deuer_v in_o scripture_n itself_o save_v only_o a_o very_a few_o point_n to_o wit_n the_o chief_a and_o fundamental_a mystery_n of_o our_o belief_n last_o see_v the_o whole_a church_n consist_v of_o all_o particular_a member_n which_o can_v never_o be_v find_v out_o and_o consult_v with_o by_o any_o person_n and_o that_o consequent_o there_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a assurance_n have_v of_o what_o they_o all_o hold_v as_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a we_o shall_v be_v move_v by_o their_o authority_n as_o the_o bishop_n here_o suppose_v to_o believe_v all_o or_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 17._o 2._o the_o relatour_n next_o work_n be_v to_o carp_v at_o the_o gloss_n which_o a._n c._n give_v to_o those_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n rom._n 10._o 15._o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v etc_o that_o be_v say_v a._n c._n how_o shall_v they_o preach_v infallible_o by_o which_o manner_n of_o speak_v yet_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a whatever_o the_o bishop_n impute_v to_o he_o to_o make_v every_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o have_v learning_n enough_o to_o preach_v a_o infallible_a preacher_n he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o native_a and_o immediate_a sense_n of_o those_o word_n compare_v and_o join_v with_o the_o foregoing_a how_o shall_v man_n believe_v unless_o they_o hear_v etc_o be_v only_o to_o signify_v that_o for_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v necessary_a there_o shall_v be_v preacher_n and_o that_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o take_v that_o office_n upon_o he_o unless_o he_o be_v send_v that_o be_v ordain_v and_o call_v by_o almighty_a god_n he_o be_v not_o so_o simple_a as_o to_o think_v every_o private_a preacher_n infallible_a you_o will_v say_v then_o why_o do_v he_o comment_v upon_o the_o word_n how_o shall_v they_o preach_v etc_fw-la thus_o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v infallible_o unless_o they_o be_v send_v from_o god_n and_o infallible_o assist_v by_o his_o spirit_n i_o answer_v the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v because_o the_o word_n preach_v which_o the_o apostle_n use_v do_v not_o signify_v sermon_n only_o but_o absolute_o the_o announce_v or_o publication_n of_o divine_a doctrine_n by_o all_o such_o as_o be_v lawful_o appoint_v to_o publish_v it_o and_o in_o what_o manner_n soever_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o believer_n that_o it_o be_v publish_v and_o announce_v to_o they_o now_o there_o be_v confess_o a_o twofold_a annunciation_n or_o manner_n of_o publish_v divine_a doctrine_n to_o christian_n the_o one_o private_a and_o mere_o ministerial_a which_o be_v perform_v by_o private_a and_o particular_a pastor_n to_o their_o particular_a and_o respective_a flock_n the_o other_o public_a and_o authoritative_a viz._n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n assemble_v together_o in_o general_n council_n and_o this_o latter_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o public_a and_o universal_a benefitt_a which_o come_v by_o it_o the_o more_o important_a of_o the_o
do_v not_o with_o any_o presumption_n signify_v that_o a_o man_n be_v a_o protestant_n which_o fall_v out_o otherwise_o in_o england_n for_o here_o it_o have_v always_o be_v hold_v a_o conformity_n to_o and_o with_o the_o protestant_a religion_n profess_v in_o england_n to_o go_v to_o church_n and_o therefore_o not_o allow_v by_o any_o of_o our_o divine_n who_o never_o give_v way_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o false_a doctrine_n now_o who_o be_v more_o guilty_a of_o dissimulation_n in_o religion_n which_o the_o bishop_n charge_v upon_o some_o of_o our_o party_n than_o the_o bishop_n himself_o do_v he_o not_o §_o 35._o punct_a 5._o profess_o allow_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o such_o catholic_n as_o do_v both_o witting_o and_o know_o associate_v themselves_o even_o to_o the_o gross_a superstition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o such_o as_o come_v even_o near_o to_o idolatry_n only_o because_o they_o believe_v the_o creed_n and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o teach_v it_o lawful_a at_o lest_o no_o sin_n exclude_v salvation_n to_o join_v one_o self_n outward_o to_o a_o superstitious_a church_n in_o a_o superstitious_a false_a and_o even_o idolatrous_a way_n of_o worship_v god_n contrary_a to_o one_o knowledge_n and_o constience_n only_o for_o some_o temporal_a and_o worldly_a respect_n and_o consequent_o that_o man_n be_v not_o always_o bind_v to_o seem_v and_o appear_v as_o they_o be_v but_o sometime_o at_o least_o may_v have_v liberty_n to_o wear_v a_o mask_n but_o certain_o that_o which_o follow_v be_v a_o most_o strange_a and_o inconsequent_a paradox_n if_o ever_o any_o be_v if_o the_o religion_n of_o protestant_n say_v the_o bishop_n be_v a_o know_a false_a religion_n than_o the_o romanist_n religion_n be_v so_o too_o for_o their_o religion_n mean_v catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v the_o same_o say_v he_o nor_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o protestant_n set_v up_o a_o different_a religion_n for_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v the_o same_o to_o both_o but_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o the_o difference_n be_v in_o certain_a gross_a corruption_n to_o the_o very_a endanger_n of_o salvation_n which_o each_o side_n say_v the_o other_o be_v guilty_a of_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o heap_v absurdity_n one_o upon_o a_o other_o which_o of_o all_o these_o proposition_n be_v maintainable_a in_o any_o true_a and_o proper_a sense_n the_o religion_n of_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v the_o same_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o church_n of_o protestant_n set_v not_o up_o different_a religion_n christian_n religion_n be_v the_o same_o both_o to_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o yet_o differ_v in_o it_o first_o be_v we_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n because_o we_o agree_v in_o some_o few_o general_a point_n why_o may_v he_o not_o as_o well_o have_v say_v that_o arian_n and_o all_o other_o heretic_n be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o us._n by_o reason_n of_o their_o agreement_n with_o we_o in_o some_o point_n of_o faith_n second_o be_v christian_a religion_n i_o mean_v in_o the_o necessary_a soundness_n and_o integrity_n of_o it_o common_a both_o to_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n what_o protestant_a will_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o why_o will_v the_o relatour_n trifle_n and_o abuse_v his_o reader_n with_o such_o vain_a and_o pernicious_a amphibologie_n as_o he_o here_o use_v in_o a_o business_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n three_o if_o we_o catholic_n be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o protestant_n how_o can_v we_o be_v say_v to_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o the_o same_o religion_n as_o the_o relatour_n here_o express_o say_v we_o 〈◊〉_d can_v i_o be_v of_o the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d with_o my_o neighbour_n and_o yet_o differ_v from_o he_o in_o the_o same_o thing_n sure_o if_o our_o religion_n and_o that_o of_o protestant_n be_v the_o same_o we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v to_o differ_v but_o to_o agree_v in_o it_o unless_o our_o adversary_n and_o his_o party_n think_v they_o may_v vary_v the_o common_a sense_n and_o notion_n of_o word_n at_o their_o sole_a pleasure_n beside_o those_o point_n about_o which_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o corruption_n and_o error_n the_o bishop_n himself_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o do_v differ_v either_o they_o be_v part_n of_o chrstian_a religion_n or_o they_o be_v not_o so_o they_o be_v part_n of_o christian_a religion_n see_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n we_o differ_v in_o they_o from_o protestant_n how_o be_v christian_a religion_n in_o gross_a say_v to_o be_v common_a to_o we_o both_o how_o be_v it_o the_o same_o to_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n if_o they_o be_v not_o part_n of_o christian_a religion_n how_o can_v we_o by_o reason_n of_o they_o be_v say_v to_o differ_v from_o protestant_n in_o religion_n or_o in_o the_o same_o christian_a religion_n but_o what_o say_v the_o bishop_n can_v i_o prove_v any_o superstition_n or_o 4._o error_n to_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n none_o at_o all_o a.c._n it_o seem_v have_v tell_v he_o so_o now_o true_o i_o will_v to_o god_n from_o my_o heart_n this_o be_v true_a and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o happy_a and_o the_o catholic_a church_n thereby_o 〈◊〉_d with_o truth_n and_o peace_n for_o i_o be_o confident_a such_o truth_n will_v soon_o either_o command_v peace_n or_o confound_v peace_n breaker_n but_o be_v there_o 〈◊〉_d superstition_n in_o adoration_n of_o image_n none_o in_o invocation_n of_o saint_n none_o in_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v there_o 〈◊〉_d error_n in_o break_v christ_n own_a institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o give_v it_o but_o in_o one_o kind_n none_o about_o purgatory_n and_o common_a prayer_n in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n these_o and_o many_o more_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a work_n to_o prove_v every_o one_o of_o these_o to_o be_v error_n or_o superstition_n or_o both_o we_o answer_v it_o be_v a_o hard_a work_n to_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v so_o then_o bare_o to_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v so_o otherwise_o we_o be_v confident_a his_o lordship_n will_v have_v be_v as_o liberal_a of_o his_o proof_n in_o this_o kind_n as_o he_o be_v of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d for_o sure_o it_o more_o import_v he_o to_o prove_v then_o to_o accuse_v but_o we_o ask_v how_o will_v his_o friend_n and_o adherent_n after_o he_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v superstition_n and_o error_n by_o scripture_n only_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n that_o the_o place_n allege_v out_o of_o scripture_n to_o that_o purpose_n bear_v the_o sense_n in_o which_o protestant_n understand_v rather_o than_o that_o in_o which_o general_n council_n understand_v they_o when_o they_o define_v the_o recite_v particular_n as_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n believe_v and_o observe_v they_o at_o this_o day_n when_o they_o have_v do_v all_o they_o can_v the_o final_a resolution_n of_o the_o business_n must_v according_a to_o protestant_n be_v reduce_v to_o private_a judgement_n which_o in_o such_o matter_n as_o these_o according_a to_o st._n austin_n be_v most_o insolent_a madness_n nor_o do_v i_o see_v upon_o what_o ground_n the_o relatour_n can_v be_v so_o 118._o confident_a that_o if_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v so_o happy_a as_o to_o teach_v nothing_o but_o truth_n to_o wit_n in_o protestant_n sense_n that_o be_v to_o agree_v with_o ibidem_fw-la protestant_n in_o condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o jmage_n jnuocation_n of_o saint_n adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n purgatory_n etc_n it_o will_v so_o certain_o either_o command_n peace_n or_o confound_v peace-breaker_n as_o he_o imagine_v what_o confusion_n i_o pray_v will_v it_o be_v for_o such_o people_n to_o disagree_v from_o a_o church_n which_o proclaim_v she_o own_o erroneousness_n to_o all_o the_o world_n by_o begin_v now_o to_o teach_v contrary_a not_o only_o to_o herself_o and_o she_o own_o former_a belief_n but_o contrary_a to_o the_o general_a belief_n of_o all_o christendom_n beside_o for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n will_v not_o the_o very_a alteration_n of_o doctrine_n which_o in_o this_o supposition_n the_o roman_a church_n must_v necessary_o make_v render_v it_o evident_a to_o all_o man_n that_o both_o herself_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n with_o she_o may_v err_v and_o have_v err_v in_o point_n of_o great_a importance_n concern_v the_o faith_n what_o peace-breaker_n will_v be_v confound_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o church_n so_o apt_a to_o fall_v into_o error_n and_o superstition_n of_o such_o dangerous_a nature_n true_o for_o my_o part_n i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o think_v such_o a_o impossible_a case_n as_o the_o bishop_n here_o putt_v will_v either_o command_n peace_n or_o confound_v peace-breaker_n that_o be_v the_o author_n or_o abettor_n of_o private_a
observe_v again_o epist._n pag._n 19_o that_o no_o one_o thing_n have_v make_v conscientious_a man_n of_o his_o party_n more_o waver_a in_o their_o mind_n and_o more_o apt_a to_o be_v draw_v beside_o from_o the_o religion_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n then_o want_v of_o of_o uniform_a and_o decent_a order_n etc._n etc._n thereupon_o take_v occasion_n to_o enlarge_v himself_o on_o the_o subject_n of_o ceremony_n show_v their_o usefulness_n and_o necessity_n in_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o religion_n wherein_o i_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o contradict_v he_o only_o this_o i_o must_v note_v by_o the_o way_n that_o whereas_o out_o of_o indulgence_n to_o his_o ordinary_a humour_n he_o tax_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o thrust_v in_o many_o that_o be_v unnecessary_a and_o superstitious_a he_o may_v have_v know_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n itself_o not_o only_o enable_v but_o enjoin_v all_o particular_a bishop_n in_o their_o respective_a diocese_n and_o all_o archbishop_n and_o metropolitan_o in_o their_o respective_a province_n to_o reform_v what_o ever_o they_o may_v find_v amiss_o in_o this_o kind_n and_o this_o his_o crimination_n be_v no_o more_o than_o be_v object_v to_o himself_o by_o his_o own_o people_n we_o shall_v in_o due_a place_n show_v in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v we_o maintain_v that_o out_o of_o rome_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman-catholique_a church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n at_o present_v it_o may_v suffice_v to_o say_v that_o we_o do_v not_o shut_v up_o salvation_n in_o such_o a_o narrow_a conclave_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v his_o reader_n believe_v when_o he_o parallel_v we_o with_o the_o donatist_n we_o teach_v no_o other_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o attainment_n of_o salvation_n than_o what_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o all_o age_n in_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n and_o be_v now_o visible_o teach_v and_o profess_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n viz._n that_o out_o of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n salvation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v nor_o do_v we_o shut_v heaven-gate_n as_o the_o relatour_n insinuate_v to_o any_o that_o be_v willing_a to_o enter_v provide_v they_o be_v willing_a to_o enter_v and_o go_v that_o way_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v but_o it_o be_v the_o bishop_n and_o his_o party_n that_o do_v real_o shut_v heaven-gate_n to_o those_o who_o otherwise_o may_v enter_v even_o while_o they_o pretend_v to_o open_v they_o for_o by_o teach_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n to_o be_v wide_a than_o it_o be_v and_o that_o salvation_n may_v be_v attain_v by_o such_o mean_n and_o in_o such_o way_n as_o according_a to_o god_n ordinary_a providence_n it_o can_v what_o do_v they_o but_o put_v man_n into_o a_o false_a way_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o lead_v they_o in_o that_o straight_a path_n to_o eternal_a happiness_n which_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v trace_v out_o that_o broad_a way_n to_o they_o which_o lead_v to_o death_n i_o shall_v close_v my_o preface_n with_o a_o advertisement_n to_o such_o as_o be_v apt_a to_o quarrel_v at_o word_n beyond_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o that_o use_v they_o the_o infallible_a which_o in_o treat_v of_o the_o church_n and_o general_n council_n i_o have_v have_v frequent_a occasion_n to_o make_v use_n of_o be_v cunning_o raise_v by_o our_o adversary_n to_o so_o high_a a_o pitch_n of_o signification_n as_o though_o it_o can_v import_v no_o less_o than_o the_o ascribe_v of_o a_o intrinsical_a unerring_a power_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o those_o we_o account_v infallible_a which_o be_v clear_o to_o pervert_v our_o meaning_n we_o intend_v to_o signify_v no_o more_o when_o we_o say_v the_o church_n or_o general_n council_n be_v infallible_a then_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n promise_n they_o have_v never_o err_v nor_o ever_o shall_v in_o definition_n of_o faith_n in_o fine_a good_a reader_n that_o thou_o may_v see_v and_o embrace_v the_o truth_n be_v the_o hearty_a wish_n of_o he_o that_o bid_v thou_o no_o less_o hearty_o farewell_n labyrinthus_n cantuariensis_n or_o dr._n lawed_n labyrinth_n be_v a_o answer_n to_o his_o lordship_n relation_n of_o a_o conference_n between_o himself_o and_o mr._n fisher_n etc._n etc._n chap._n i._o state_v the_o conference_n between_o the_o bishop_n and_o mr._n fisher_n for_o satisfaction_n of_o a_o person_n of_o honour_n argument_n 1._o the_o introduction_n 2._o the_o bishop_n artifice_n in_o wave_v a_o direct_a answer_n to_o the_o question_n 3._o his_o pretend_a solution_n to_o certain_a authority_n refer_v to_o a_o fit_a place_n for_o answer_n 4._o his_o maintain_v the_o greek_n not_o to_o have_v lose_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o they_o be_v a_o true_a church_n 5._o the_o modern_a greek_n in_o error_n not_o the_o ancient_n 6._o why_o filioque_fw-la insert_v into_o the_o nicene_n creed_n 1._o though_o dedalus_n that_o ingenious_a artificer_n may_v possible_o show_v no_o less_o skill_n in_o contrive_v his_o cretan_a labyrinth_n than_o do_v the_o principal_a architect_n employ_v by_o solomon_n in_o build_v that_o magnisicent_a temple_n at_o jerusalem_n yet_o their_o labour_n be_v of_o a_o different_a nature_n for_o whereas_o the_o latter_a exercise_v his_o art_n in_o raise_v a_o noble_a elevate_v lightsome_a structure_n the_o former_a dedalus_n use_v all_o his_o inventive_a industry_n in_o frame_v a_o subterraneous_a darksome_a prison_n with_o such_o redouble_a turn_n perplex_v wind_n and_o tortuous_a meander_n that_o who_o ever_o enter_v into_o it_o may_v indeed_o wander_v up_o and_o down_o within_o its_o involve_a and_o recur_v path_n but_o never_o be_v able_a to_o get_v either_o back_n or_o through_o it_o now_o allude_v to_o these_o different_a work_n we_o may_v not_o unfit_o compare_v the_o learned_a labour_n of_o the_o father_n doctor_n and_o worthy_a divine_n of_o god_n church_n to_o this_o stately_a temple_n of_o solomon_n be_v the_o rich_a and_o illustrious_a monument_n of_o their_o piety_n zeal_n and_o erudition_n whereas_o by_o the_o cretan_a labyrinth_n be_v fit_o symbolise_v the_o artificial_a but_o pestiferous_a work_n of_o all_o heretical_a author_n who_o forsake_v the_o ever-visible_a and_o conspicuous_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o know_v consent_n of_o christendom_n induce_v themselves_o and_o follower_n to_o believe_v the_o novel_a fancy_n of_o their_o own_o fanatic_a brain_n these_o man_n labour_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v lightsome_a monument_n that_o they_o be_v rather_o labyrinth_n or_o intricate_a dungeon_n for_o poor_a seduce_v soul_n who_o be_v once_o engage_v in_o the_o perplexity_n of_o their_o entangle_a flexure_n see_v not_o the_o radiant_a light_n of_o god_n church_n some_o few_o only_o except_v who_o of_o his_o great_a mercy_n he_o be_v please_v to_o show_v the_o way_n out_o and_o reduce_v into_o his_o fold_n now_o it_o have_v already_o be_v show_v by_o other_o that_o the_o work_n of_o many_o late_a protestant_a writer_n of_o this_o nation_n be_v of_o the_o aforesaid_a intangle_a nature_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o by_o god_n help_n but_o to_o evidence_n that_o this_o their_o grand_a author_n book_n i_o be_o now_o about_o to_o answer_v be_v very_o liable_a to_o the_o same_o reproach_n for_o to_o describe_v it_o right_o it_o be_v a_o labyrinth_n most_o artificial_o compose_v with_o as_o many_o abstruse_a turn_n ambiguous_a wind_n and_o intricate_a meander_n as_o that_o of_o dedalus_n and_o therefore_o equal_o inextricable_a but_o a_o more_o sure_a and_o strong_a clew_n than_o ariadne_n the_o line_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n authority_n and_o tradition_n join_v with_o holy_a scripture_n have_v not_o only_o carry_v i_o through_o it_o but_o by_o god_n good_a assistance_n enable_v i_o to_o render_v it_o pervious_a to_o all_o by_o the_o discovery_n and_o directive_n mark_v i_o have_v set_v on_o the_o leave_n that_o compose_v this_o present_a volume_n yet_o before_o i_o descend_v to_o particular_n i_o must_v advertise_v the_o reader_n that_o i_o design_v not_o the_o defence_n either_o of_o mr._n fisher_n or_o any_o other_o author_n further_o than_o they_o deliver_v the_o general_o receive_v doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v that_o i_o undertake_v to_o maintain_v the_o three_o lead_a page_n of_o the_o bishop_n book_n contain_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o conference_n between_o himself_o and_o mr._n fisher_n viz._n for_o the_o satisfaction_n 2._o of_o a_o honourable_a lady_n who_o have_v hear_v it_o grant_v on_o the_o protestant_a part_n in_o a_o former_a conference_n that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o continual_a visible_a company_n ever_o since_o christ_n teach_v unchanged_a doctrine_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o find_v it_o seem_v in_o her_o own_o reason_n that_o such_o a_o company_n or_o church_n must_v not_o be_v fallible_a in_o its_o teach_v be_v in_o quest_n of_o a_o continual_a visible_a and_o infallible_a church_n as_o
not_o think_v it_o fit_a for_o unlearned_a person_n to_o judge_v of_o particular_a doctrinal_n but_o to_o depend_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o point_n of_o infallibility_n the_o bishop_n seek_v to_o evade_v say_v that_o neither_o the_o jesuit_n nor_o the_o lady_n herself_o speak_v very_o advise_o if_o she_o say_v she_o desire_v to_o rely_v 3._o upon_o a_o infallible_a church_n because_o a_o infallible_a church_n denote_v a_o particular_a church_n in_o opposition_n to_o some_o other_o particular_a church_n not_o infallible_a 2._o here_o already_o you_o may_v observe_v the_o bishop_n fall_v to_o work_v on_o he_o project_v labyrinth_n by_o make_v its_o first_o crook_n which_o be_v apparent_a to_o any_o man_n that_o have_v eye_n even_o without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o perspective_n for_o though_o he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o lady_n seek_v not_o any_o one_o particular_a infallible_a church_n in_o opposition_n to_o another_o particular_a church_n not_o infallible_a but_o some_o church_n such_o as_o may_v without_o danger_n of_o error_n direct_v she_o in_o all_o doctrinal_a point_n of_o faith_n call_v it_o a_o or_o the_o infallible_a church_n as_o you_o please_v for_o she_o have_v no_o such_o quirk_n in_o her_o head_n yet_o the_o bishop_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n understand_v she_o sincere_a meaning_n but_o instead_o of_o use_v a_o charitable_a endeavour_n to_o satisfy_v her_o perplex_a conscience_n vain_o pursue_v that_o mere_a quibble_n on_o purpose_n to_o decline_v the_o difficulty_n of_o give_v she_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_n in_o his_o own_o principle_n neither_o indeed_o do_v that_o expression_n a_o infallible_a church_n denote_v a_o particular_a church_n in_o opposition_n to_o some_o other_o particular_a church_n not_o infallible_a but_o positive_o signify_v a_o church_n that_o never_o have_v shall_v or_o can_v err_v in_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n without_o connotate_v or_o imply_v any_o other_o church_n that_o may_v err_v nor_o can_v it_o be_v pretend_v that_o the_o particle_n a_o or_o a_o be_v only_o appliable_a to_o particular_n see_v the_o bishop_n himself_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o omit_v other_o place_n see_v page_n 141._o where_n speak_v of_o the_o whole_a 5_o militant_a church_n he_o say_v and_o if_o she_o err_v in_o the_o foundation_n that_o be_v in_o some_o one_o or_o more_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n than_o she_o may_v be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n still_o here_o sure_o he_o can_v mean_v a_o particular_a church_n by_o this_o expression_n a_o true_a church_n but_o the_o whole_a catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n unless_o he_o intend_v to_o speak_v nonsense_n viz._n that_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n be_v a_o particular_a church_n and_o what_o learned_a interpreter_n ever_o understand_v those_o word_n of_o saint_n paul_n ephes._n 5._o 27._o that_o he_o may_v exhibit_v to_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n etc._n etc._n of_o any_o other_o save_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o see_v the_o lady_n make_v enquiry_n after_o that_o church_n in_o which_o one_o may_v and_o out_o of_o which_o one_o can_v attain_v salvation_n as_o the_o bishop_n set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o mr._n fisher_n page_n 3_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o real_o and_o in_o effect_n she_o seek_v no_o other_o save_o the_o universal_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o a._n c._n to_o take_v away_o all_o doubt_n of_o her_o meaning_n express_v pag._n 1_o by_o say_v that_o she_o desire_v to_o depend_v upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o true_a church_n why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o lady_n express_v herself_o as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o do_v in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v by_o the_o particle_n a_o or_o a_o and_o yet_o not_o speak_v so_o improper_o that_o he_o must_v needs_o mistake_v her_o meaning_n the_o truth_n be_v it_o be_v a_o affect_a mistake_n in_o his_o lordship_n as_o any_o man_n may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o have_v not_o lose_v his_o discern_a faculty_n but_o the_o bishop_n have_v now_o enter_v his_o hand_n and_o willing_a to_o show_v his_o dexterity_n betimes_o immediate_o redouble_v the_o crook_n he_o have_v make_v while_o to_o countenance_v his_o former_a trisle_a with_o the_o lady_n touch_v a_o infallible_a church_n he_o crafty_o attack_n bellarmin_n for_o maintain_v a_o 4._o infallibility_n in_o the_o particular_a church_n or_o diocese_n of_o rome_n as_o hope_v to_o make_v that_o opinion_n pass_v for_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n among_o catholic_n which_o it_o be_v not_o and_o by_o confute_v it_o to_o seem_v to_o have_v overthrow_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n now_o though_o beauties_n opinion_n be_v indeed_o that_o the_o whole_a clergy_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n and_o desert_n the_o pope_n so_o long_o as_o his_o chair_n remain_v in_o that_o city_n yet_o the_o bishop_n know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v not_o restrain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o her_o infallibility_n to_o that_o opinion_n of_o bellarmin_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o catholic_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n without_o further_a obligation_n to_o examine_v whether_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v infallible_a or_o not_o by_o what_o have_v be_v hitherto_o faid_fw-we a_o man_n may_v easy_o perceive_v the_o candour_n of_o the_o bishop_n proceed_v and_o what_o he_o be_v to_o expect_v from_o he_o throughout_o his_o whole_a work_n which_o will_v i_o assure_v you_o for_o the_o great_a part_n be_v find_v to_o correspond_v with_o that_o you_o have_v already_o see_v 3._o from_o the_o four_o page_n to_o the_o twenty_o he_o go_v on_o dispute_v against_o etc._n several_a opinion_n of_o bellarmin_n as_o whether_o the_o pope_n chair_n may_v be_v remove_v from_o rome_n and_o in_o case_n of_o such_o removal_n whether_o that_o particular_a church_n may_v then_o err_v which_o see_v they_o be_v but_o particular_a opinion_n i_o shall_v not_o expostulate_v they_o with_o the_o bishop_n as_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o province_n i_o have_v undertake_v and_o as_o to_o the_o authority_n here_o quote_v by_o bellarmin_n out_o of_o st._n cyprian_n st._n jerom_n st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n etc._n etc._n in_o proof_n of_o his_o opinion_n touch_v the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n see_v they_o be_v neither_o cite_v by_o the_o cardinal_n to_o prove_v any_o article_n hold_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la among_o catholic_n nor_o impugn_a by_o the_o bishop_n but_o as_o insufficient_a to_o make_v good_a those_o particular_a opinion_n though_o he_o hope_v the_o reader_n will_v make_v neither_o of_o these_o reflection_n i_o can_v hold_v myself_o oblige_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o pretend_a solution_n till_o i_o find_v they_o bring_v to_o evacuate_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o catholic_a or_o roman_a church_n in_o its_o full_a latitude_n as_o catholic_n ever_o mean_v it_o save_v when_o they_o say_v express_o the_o particular_a church_n or_o diocese_n of_o rome_n as_o here_o bellarmin_n do_v however_o i_o intend_v to_o examine_v they_o when_o i_o come_v to_o treat_v the_o question_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n where_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o i_o shall_v clear_o evince_v against_o his_o lordship_n and_o the_o whole_a party_n these_o particular_n follow_v first_o that_o to_o draw_v the_o word_n perfidia_fw-la which_o st._n cyprian_n use_v to_o his_o own_o sense_n the_o bishop_n leave_v out_o two_o part_n of_o the_o sentence_n which_o he_o ought_v necessary_o to_o have_v express_v second_o that_o by_o gloss_v almost_o every_o word_n of_o the_o text_n imperfect_o allege_v he_o make_v that_o father_n give_v no_o more_o privilege_n to_o rome_n than_o what_o be_v due_a to_o every_o particular_a church_n yea_o to_o every_o orthodox_n christian_n of_o those_o time_n quite_o contrary_a to_o st._n cyprian_n intent_n three_o how_o he_o press_v st._n cyprian_n not_o be_v tax_v by_o the_o ancient_n for_o hold_v a_o possibility_n of_o the_o pope_n teach_v error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o never_o reflect_v that_o he_o be_v as_o little_o tax_v by_o they_o for_o affix_v possibility_n of_o err_v to_o the_o universal_a and_o immemorial_n tradition_n of_o non-rebaptization_a embrace_v and_o practise_v against_o he_o by_o the_o whole_a church_n four_o i_o shall_v show_v that_o his_o lordship_n answer_v to_o st._n hieromes_n authority_n be_v mere_o nugatory_n make_v he_o advertise_v ruffinus_n that_o the_o apostolical_a faith_n first_o preach_v at_o rome_n can_v not_o in_o itself_o be_v any_o other_o than_o what_o it_o essential_o be_v that_o be_v it_o can_v not_o be_v change_v so_o long_o as_o it_o remain_v unchanged_a five_o that_o he_o trifle_n as_o much_o in_o the_o allegation_n of_o st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n for_o though_o that_o father_n use_v the_o word_n semper_fw-la retinet_fw-la as_o
term_n fundamental_a all_o stranger_n to_o the_o question_n 3._o what_o must_v be_v understand_v by_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n in_o this_o debate_n 4._o his_o fly_v from_o the_o formal_a to_o the_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n 5._o the_o distinction_n of_o point_n of_o faith_n into_o fundamental_a and_o not-fundamentall_a according_a to_o protestan_a principle_n destroy_v itself_o 6._o no_o infallibility_n in_o church-authority_n no_o faith_n 7._o how_o fundamental_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o immovable_a rock_n 8._o how_o the_o church_n authority_n render_v we_o certain_a of_o divine_a revelation_n 9_o how_o superstructure_n may_v become_v fundamental_a and_o how_o fundamental_o must_v be_v know_v to_o all_o 10._o scotus_n vindicate_v from_o one_o foul_a corruption_n and_o st._n augustin_n from_o another_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o nine_o §_o part_v friendly_a with_o the_o greek_n before_o he_o enter_v into_o war_n again_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o ten_o §_o he_o scour_v up_o his_o best_a defensive_a weapon_n the_o point_n of_o fundamental_o have_v hitherto_o give_v we_o but_o a_o glimpse_n of_o it_o he_o tell_v of_o mr._n fisher_n that_o he_o read_v a_o large_a discourse_n out_o of_o a_o print_a 26._o book_n say_v it_o be_v his_o own_o his_o lordship_n will_v seem_v to_o mistrust_v it_o write_v against_o dr._n white_a concern_v fundamental_o the_o bishop_n say_v not_o what_o he_o answer_v to_o this_o discourse_n but_o put_v all_o off_o with_o a_o i_o do_v not_o remember_v may_v he_o not_o have_v call_v to_o his_o chaplain_n for_o mr._n fisher_n book_n if_o he_o have_v mind_v a_o answer_n but_o i_o see_v he_o now_o draw_v up_o his_o great_a artillery_n of_o fundamental_o to_o attack_v his_o adversary_n for_o say_v all_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a yet_o this_o prove_v but_o a_o squib_n for_o he_o present_o go_v out_o of_o the_o question_n to_o disport_v himself_o with_o a_o fancy_n of_o his_o own_o a_o piece_n of_o policy_n forsooth_o which_o he_o have_v spy_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n 1._o rome_n say_v he_o to_o shrivel_v the_o credit_n of_o its_o opposer_n blast_v they_o all_o 27._o with_o the_o name_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatique_n and_o so_o by_o that_o mean_n grow_v into_o greatness_n to_o make_v good_a which_o proceed_v this_o course_n be_v take_v the_o school_n must_v maintain_v that_o all_o point_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v thereby_o fundamental_a necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o faith_n and_o then_o say_v he_o leave_v active_a head_n to_o determine_v not_o what_o be_v true_a but_o what_o be_v fit_a for_o they_o now_o what_o a_o weak_a discourse_n have_v we_o here_o from_o a_o grave_a primate_n of_o england_n think_v he_o all_o the_o world_n be_v turn_v mad_a or_o heathen_a no_o truth_n leave_v upon_o earth_n but_o all_o become_v juggler_n be_v the_o whole_a business_n of_o religion_n but_o a_o legerdemain_n to_o serve_v the_o pope_n ambition_n a_o puff_n of_o wind_n be_v it_o credible_a so_o many_o learned_a and_o venerable_a prelate_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n who_o eminent_a sanctity_n it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o illustrate_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o glorious_a miracle_n so_o many_o famous_a doctor_n and_o head_n of_o school_n so_o many_o austere_a and_o religious_a person_n as_o have_v seclude_v themselves_o from_o all_o temporal_a concernment_n to_o attend_v whole_o to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n be_v it_o credible_a i_o say_v that_o all_o these_o be_v such_o egregious_a dissembler_n as_o to_o prostitute_v their_o own_o salvation_n to_o the_o pope_n greatness_n by_o determine_v not_o what_o they_o conceive_v true_a but_o what_o they_o esteem_v fit_a for_o his_o temporal_a end_n such_o stuff_n as_o this_o may_v serve_v sometime_o for_o pulpit-babble_n to_o deceive_v the_o giddy_a multitude_n and_o to_o cast_v a_o mist_n before_o their_o eye_n that_o they_o may_v not_o see_v the_o impurity_n of_o their_o own_a english-protestant_n church_n even_o in_o its_o first_o rise_n under_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o the_o people-cheating_a policy_n it_o be_v behold_v to_o for_o its_o restauration_n under_o queen_n elizabeth_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o history_n but_o who_o can_v have_v imagine_v his_o lordship_n will_v betray_v so_o great_a a_o weakness_n of_o judgement_n nay_o so_o much_o want_n of_o charity_n as_o to_o affirm_v so_o groundless_a so_o impossible_a a_o slander_n but_o let_v it_o pass_v for_o one_o of_o the_o bishop_n railleries_n yet_o i_o must_v confess_v it_o become_v not_o one_o that_o will_v be_v esteem_v a_o grave_a doctor_n of_o the_o english_a church_n a_o alterius_fw-la orbis_fw-la patriarcha_fw-la as_o the_o ancient_n primate_fw-la of_o england_n have_v be_v call_v 2._o after_o his_o lordship_n have_v sport_v thus_o a_o while_n with_o all_o that_o can_v be_v serious_a upon_o earth_n man_n salvation_n he_o return_v again_o to_o the_o question_n whether_o all_o point_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a and_o like_o one_o that_o provide_v for_o a_o retreat_n or_o subter-fuge_a he_o cut_v out_o a_o number_n of_o ambiguous_a distinction_n as_o so_o many_o turn_n and_o wind_n to_o fly_v away_o by_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o it_o he_o blame_v mr._n fisher_n for_o not_o distinguish_v between_o a_o church_n in_o general_n which_o he_o suppose_v can_v err_v 3._o and_o a_o general_a council_n which_o he_o say_v he_o grant_v not_o that_o it_o can_v err_v will_v he_o have_v woman_n and_o child_n come_v to_o determine_v doctrine_n you_o will_v find_v he_o always_o perplex_v the_o question_n he_o stagger_v in_o the_o delivery_n of_o his_o own_o judgement_n he_o say_v he_o be_v slow_a in_o oppose_v what_o be_v conclude_v by_o a_o lawful_a general_n and_o consent_v authority_n this_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o church_n in_o general_n it_o seem_v then_o sometime_o he_o oppose_v it_o or_o stagger_v at_o it_o as_o those_o sometime_o do_v that_o go_v slow_o one_o while_o he_o will_v take_v fundamental_a for_o a_o point_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v explicitè_fw-fr as_o distinguish_v from_o a_o point_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v only_a implicitè_fw-fr another_o while_n he_o take_v it_o for_o a_o prime_n and_o native_a principle_n of_o faith_n as_o contradistinguish_v from_o what_o he_o call_v a_o superstructure_n or_o deducible_a from_o it_o now_o he_o take_v fundamental_a for_o a_o point_n common_a to_o all_o and_o contain_v express_o in_o the_o creed_n then_o for_o a_o point_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v of_o all_o in_o order_n to_o salvation_n as_o distinguish_v it_o from_o a_o point_n necessary_a only_o to_o some_o particular_a man_n salvation_n and_o thus_o by_o shift_v from_o one_o acception_n to_o another_o he_o carry_v on_o the_o design_n of_o his_o labyrinth_n with_o so_o much_o art_n that_o the_o reader_n be_v in_o great_a danger_n to_o be_v lose_v in_o follow_v he_o 3._o have_v therefore_o see_v the_o word_n fundamental_a use_v in_o so_o many_o different_a sense_n we_o will_v first_o deduce_v even_o from_o the_o bishop_n own_o discourse_n the_o right_a sense_n in_o which_o for_o the_o present_a we_o ought_v to_o take_v the_o word_n fundamental_a his_o lordship_n and_o mr._n fisher_n fall_v upon_o this_o dispute_n about_o point_n fundamental_a or_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n occasional_o from_o what_o be_v touch_v in_o their_o debate_n concern_v the_o greek_a church_n where_o the_o bishop_n affirm_v that_o though_o they_o have_v grievous_o err_v in_o divinity_n yet_o not_o in_o a_o point_n fundamental_a sufficient_a to_o un-church_n they_o which_o must_v needs_o have_v happen_v have_v they_o err_v in_o a_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n wherefore_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o 25_o the_o page_n take_v it_o for_o the_o same_o to_o put_v the_o greek_n out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o deny_v to_o they_o salvation_n we_o have_v also_o see_v how_o in_o the_o word_n late_o cite_v he_o call_v fundamental_a what_o ever_o be_v necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v nor_o can_v the_o lady_n be_v think_v to_o have_v require_v satisfaction_n concern_v fundamental_o in_o the_o bishop_n sense_n for_o she_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v understand_v what_o both_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n usual_o mean_a in_o this_o dispute_n and_o mr._n fisher_n pag._n 42._o even_o as_o the_o bishop_n §_o 2._o pag._n 2_o cite_v his_o word_n give_v a_o express_a advertisement_n that_o by_o point_n fundamental_a neither_o he_o nor_o the_o lady_n understand_v any_o other_o then_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n when_o he_o say_v thus_o in_o all_o fundamental_a point_n that_o be_v in_o all_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o question_n then_o in_o controversy_n between_o the_o bishop_n and_o mr._n fisher_n be_v whether_o all_o point_v
dispute_n which_o proper_o and_o direct_o question_v matter_n full_o establish_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n his_o lordship_n therefore_o find_v his_o first_o solution_n to_o fail_v he_o recurr_n to_o a_o second_o much_o weak_a than_o the_o first_o for_o grant_v the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n whereof_o st._n augustin_n speak_v he_o deny_v it_o to_o follow_v thence_o that_o all_o point_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a in_o faith_n but_o against_o this_o i_o thus_o argue_v out_o of_o st._n augustin_n all_o those_o point_n the_o disbelief_n whereof_o shake_v the_o foundation_n be_v fundamental_a in_o faith_n but_o all_o the_o point_v establish_v by_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v such_o as_o the_o disbelief_n of_o they_o shake_v the_o foundation_n ergo_fw-la all_o point_v establish_v by_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a in_o faith_n if_o he_o distinguish_v the_o major_n that_o they_o shake_v some_o foundation_n of_o our_o religion_n but_o not_o every_o foundation_n i_o disprove_v he_o thus_o whoever_o shake_v the_o foundation_n st._n augustin_n speak_v of_o which_o be_v the_o church_n shake_v consequential_o every_o foundation_n of_o our_o religion_n this_o i_o have_v above_o prove_v because_o nothing_o can_v be_v infallible_o believe_v when_o the_o church_n foundation_n be_v shake_v but_o the_o denial_n of_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n shake_v the_o foundation_n st._n augustin_n speak_v of_o that_o be_v the_o church_n as_o the_o bishop_n now_o suppose_v foundation_n to_o be_v take_v ergo_fw-la the_o disbelief_n of_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n shake_v every_o foundation_n of_o religion_n his_o prove_v that_o some_o thing_n be_v found_v which_o be_v not_o fundamental_a in_o faith_n be_v very_o true_a for_o st._n paul_n steeple_n be_v well_o found_v yet_o be_v no_o fundamental_a point_n in_o faith_n but_o as_o little_a to_o the_o present_a purpose_n as_o can_v be_v for_o who_o ever_o asfirm_v that_o all_o thing_n found_v even_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a in_o faith_n and_o as_o little_a conclude_v that_o which_o follow_v about_o church_n authority_n for_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n whereof_o only_o we_o now_o treat_v as_o it_o be_v infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v either_o divine_a in_o it_o self_n to_o wit_n as_o inform_v with_o that_o assistance_n or_o so_o necessary_a for_o the_o give_v infallible_a assent_n to_o divine_a revelation_n that_o no_o man_n reject_v it_o can_v give_v a_o infallible_a assent_n to_o any_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n for_o see_v upon_o that_o authority_n only_o we_o be_v infallible_o certify_v that_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v reveal_v from_o god_n if_o in_o any_o thing_n we_o oppugn_v the_o firmness_n of_o that_o authority_n we_o can_v believe_v infallible_o that_o any_o one_o of_o they_o be_v reveal_v from_o god_n though_o therefore_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o church-definitive_a authority_n be_v not_o simple_o divine_a yet_o be_v it_o so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o if_o it_o be_v reject_v it_o destroy_v salvation_n which_o be_v to_o be_v fundamental_a in_o our_o present_a debate_n chap._n 3._o a_o continuation_n of_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n argument_n 1._o all_o definition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n concern_v doctrine_n infallible_a and_o by_o many_o of_o the_o learned_a hold_v divine_a 2._o one_o text_n of_o st._n augustin_n shameful_o abuse_v three_o several_a way_n 3._o no_o man_n opinion_n confute_v by_o his_o lordship_n bellarmin_n miscit_v 4._o the_o pope_n always_o include_v in_o the_o church_n and_o council_n 5._o a._n c's_o word_n cite_v by_o half_n 6._o how_o the_o church_n definition_n be_v say_v to_o be_v her_o foundation_n 7._o a._n c._n corrupt_a the_o second_o time_n 8._o vincentius_n lirinensis_n falsify_v thrice_o at_o least_o 9_o stapleton_n and_o bellarmin_n good_a friend_n notwithstanding_o the_o bishop_n endeavour_n to_o make_v they_o jar_v in_o the_o first_o place_n we_o grant_v what_o be_v here_o set_v down_o viz._n that_o thing_n may_v be_v found_v upon_o humane_a authority_n and_o be_v very_o certain_a yet_o not_o 34._o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n for_o we_o say_v nothing_o that_o have_v any_o shadow_n of_o contradict_v this_o but_o our_o assertion_n be_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v oppose_v which_o be_v make_v firm_a by_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n because_o this_o be_v according_a to_o st._n augustin_n to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n cit_fw-la therefore_o all_o thing_n make_v firm_a by_o the_o full_a authority_n definition_n declaration_n or_o determination_n use_v what_o term_n you_o please_v of_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a to_o wit_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o god_n revelation_n contain_v in_o they_o as_o we_o have_v often_o say_v 1._o now_o concern_v what_o be_v add_v that_o full_a church-authority_n when_o ibidem_fw-la it_o be_v at_o full_a sea_n be_v not_o simple_o divine_a i_o will_v not_o dispute_v with_o his_o lordship_n whether_o it_o be_v or_o no_o because_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o such_o authority_n be_v infallible_a for_o if_o it_o be_v infallible_a it_o can_v propose_v to_o we_o any_o thing_n as_o reveal_v by_o god_n but_o what_o be_v so_o reveal_v so_o that_o to_o dispute_v against_o this_o authority_n be_v in_o effect_n to_o take_v away_o all_o authority_n from_o god_n revelation_n we_o have_v no_o other_o absolute_a certainty_n that_o this_o or_o that_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n but_o only_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n propose_v or_o attest_v it_o unto_o we_o as_o reveal_v whence_o also_o it_o follow_v that_o to_o doubt_v dispute_v against_o or_o deny_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o doubt_v dispute_v against_o and_o deny_v that_o which_o be_v fundamental_a in_o faith_n this_o discourse_n may_v be_v grant_v i_o say_v and_o yet_o the_o church_n be_v deny_v to_o be_v of_o divine_a authority_n notwithstanding_o that_o infallible_a and_o divine_a seem_v to_o many_o great_a divine_n to_o be_v term_n convertible_a and_o stapleton_n who_o the_o bishop_n cite_v in_o the_o margin_n be_v far_o from_o deny_v it_o as_o will_v have_v better_o appear_v if_o his_o word_n have_v be_v fair_o cite_v for_o i_o find_v he_o thus_o to_o write_v si_fw-mi quaeratur_fw-la quare_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la est_fw-la veritatis_fw-la tam_fw-la certa_fw-la testis_fw-la respondemus_fw-la 1._o quia_fw-la deus_fw-la per_fw-la illam_fw-la loquor_fw-la if_o it_o be_v ask_v why_o the_o church_n be_v so_o certain_a a_o witness_n of_o truth_n we_o answer_v because_o god_n speak_v by_o she_o thus_o he_o now_o if_o god_n speak_v by_o the_o church_n certain_o she_o be_v of_o divine_a authority_n the_o same_o doctrine_n we_o find_v elsewhere_o teach_v by_o he_o deum_fw-la per_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la loqui_fw-la non_fw-la ex_fw-la solo_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la 1230._o testimonio_fw-la sed_fw-la ex_fw-la ipsis_fw-la maximè_fw-la scripture_n &_o fidei_fw-la symbolo_fw-la ex_fw-la communi_fw-la omnium_fw-la christianorum_fw-la conceptione_n certò_fw-la constat_fw-la that_o god_n speak_v by_o the_o church_n be_v most_o certain_a not_o only_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o the_o agree_v and_o the_o common_a persuasion_n of_o christian_n the_o bishop_n indeed_o grant_v thus_o much_o to_o the_o church_n that_o no_o err_a ibidem_fw-la disputant_n may_v be_v endure_v to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n which_o the_o church_n in_o general_a council_n lay_v yet_o he_o add_v that_o plain_a scripture_n with_o evident_a sense_n or_o a_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n must_v have_v room_n where_o a_o wrangle_a and_o err_a disputant_n may_v not_o be_v allow_v it_o must_v have_v room_n that_o be_v must_v be_v allow_v to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n which_o the_o church_n in_o general_a council_n lay_v for_o that_o be_v the_o necessary_a sense_n of_o his_o word_n a_o assertion_n true_o worthy_a of_o a_o protestant_a primate_n but_o i_o shall_v not_o here_o insist_v upon_o the_o manifold_a inconvenience_n of_o it_o i_o only_o tell_v his_o lordship_n at_o present_a that_o it_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o suppose_n what_o never_o be_v nor_o ever_o will_v be_v prove_v viz._n that_o there_o can_v be_v plain_a scripture_n in_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o or_o a_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n bring_v against_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n we_o deny_v that_o any_o such_o case_n can_v happen_v or_o that_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n can_v ever_o be_v so_o ill_o found_v 2._o here_o therefore_o if_o we_o observe_v it_o the_o
all_o which_o do_v so_o pertain_v to_o supernatural_a divine_a infallible_a christian_a faith_n by_o which_o faith_n christ_n the_o only_a prime_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n do_v dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o which_o faith_n be_v so_o to_o the_o church_n the_o substance_n basis_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v for_o as_o that_o be_v thus_o confirm_v or_o make_v firm_a by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n if_o they_o be_v witting_o willing_o and_o especicial_o obstinate_o deny_v or_o question_v all_o the_o whole_a frame_n and_o in_o a_o sort_n the_o foundation_n itself_o of_o all_o supernatural_a divine_a christian_a faith_n be_v shake_v thus_o he_o but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o there_o be_v a_o main_a difference_n betwixt_o these_o word_n of_o a._n c._n and_o those_o which_o he_o be_v make_v to_o speak_v by_o the_o bishop_n for_o he_o join_v the_o word_n as_o that_o to_o these_o thereby_o christ_n do_v dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n whereas_o in_o a._n c_n discourse_n they_o be_v join_v to_o these_o if_o they_o be_v witting_o willing_o and_o especial_o obstinate_o question_v etc._n etc._n that_o of_o faith_n whereby_o christ_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n etc._n etc._n be_v only_o a_o parenthesis_n add_v for_o great_a explication_n and_o not_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o discourse_n as_o the_o relatour_n no_o less_o corrupt_o then_o cunning_o make_v it_o belong_v which_o be_v a_o other_o dedalian_a turn_v in_o this_o his_o labyrinth_n now_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o accusation_n first_o say_v the_o bishop_n a_o c._n be_v mistake_v because_o all_o that_o pertain_v to_o supernatural_a divine_a and_o infallible_a christian_a faith_n be_v not_o by_o and_o by_o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n to_o all_o man_n but_o a._n c._n do_v not_o say_v it_o be_v he_o speak_v only_o of_o those_o to_o who_o such_o point_n be_v propose_v and_o who_o deny_v or_o question_v they_o when_o so_o propose_v although_o in_o some_o sense_n they_o may_v be_v say_v fundamental_a to_o all_o because_o all_o be_v to_o believe_v they_o implicit_o and_o explicit_o all_o such_o as_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o know_v they_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n second_o a._n c._n be_v accuse_v for_o confound_v the_o object_n with_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n but_o if_o his_o word_n be_v right_o penetrate_v there_o will_v appear_v no_o confusion_n for_o a._n c._n have_v first_o name_v prime_a principle_n and_o then_o go_v on_o with_o other_o which_o pertain_v to_o supernatural_a infallible_a divine_a christian_a faith_n it_o be_v apparent_a he_o understand_v by_o those_o point_n which_o so_o appertain_v not_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n itself_o but_o the_o object_n wherefore_o a._n c._n do_v here_o no_o more_o but_o explicate_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o object_n by_o the_o act_n and_o that_o only_a upon_o the_o by_o and_o in_o a_o parenthesis_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o word_n in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o confusion_n but_o clarity_n for_o as_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o hope_n charity_n and_o all_o other_o supernatural_a act_n so_o be_v the_o object_n on_o which_o faith_n be_v ground_v the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o whoever_o deny_v or_o question_n one_o point_n of_o faith_n do_v in_o effect_n question_v all_o now_o i_o wonder_v the_o bishop_n shall_v urge_v as_o a_o argument_n the_o definition_n ibidem_fw-la of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o order_n collate_v by_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o void_a though_o they_o be_v give_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n or_o any_o secular_a power_n and_o yet_o say_v we_o can_v produce_v no_o author_n that_o ever_o acknowledge_v this_o definition_n to_o be_v fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n i_o wonder_v i_o say_v he_o shall_v urge_v this_o when_o all_o catholic_a author_n who_o maintain_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a do_v in_o effect_n hold_v that_o this_o decree_n be_v fundamental_a for_o they_o all_o affirm_v that_o this_o be_v a_o lawful_a general_n council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o of_o the_o same_o authority_n to_o command_v our_o belief_n that_o any_o other_o ever_o be_v wherefore_o this_o argument_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o argumentum_fw-la ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la as_o he_o pretend_v but_o petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la now_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n be_v no_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o precise_a material_a object_n it_o be_v true_a but_o nothing_o against_o we_o who_o have_v often_o grant_v it_o the_o question_n be_v only_o about_o fundamental_a point_n in_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n as_o we_o perpetual_o inculeate_a a._n c._n further_o urge_v that_o if_o any_o one_o may_v deny_v or_o doubtful_o 38._o dispute_v against_o any_o one_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n than_o he_o may_v do_v it_o against_o another_o and_o another_o and_o so_o against_o all_o since_o all_o be_v make_v firm_a to_o we_o by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o divine_a revelation_n sufficient_o apply_v by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v weaken_v in_o one_o can_v be_v firm_a in_o any_o other_o thus_o far_o a._n c._n and_o here_o the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o have_v a._n c._n to_o have_v harrow_v this_o doctrine_n out_o of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n and_o that_o he_o may_v have_v acknowledge_v it_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v no_o error_n against_o faith_n if_o he_o do_v borrow_v it_o and_o not_o acknowledge_v it_o although_o two_o wit_n may_v sometime_o hit_v on_o the_o same_o thing_n or_o at_o least_o come_v near_o it_o which_o be_v all_o he_o here_o allow_v to_o a._n c._n without_o take_v it_o one_o from_o another_o however_o the_o doctrine_n both_o of_o a._n c._n and_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n be_v true_a for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o permit_v not_o our_o question_n or_o deny_v the_o prime_a maxim_n of_o faith_n permit_v not_o our_o question_n or_o deny_v any_o other_o doctrine_n declare_v by_o the_o church_n because_o as_o i_o say_v it_o be_v not_o the_o greatness_n or_o smallness_n of_o the_o matter_n that_o move_v we_o to_o give_v firm_a assent_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n speak_v by_o the_o church_n wherefore_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n whatsoever_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v deposit_v with_o the_o church_n for_o all_o that_o the_o church_n do_v even_o in_o thing_n of_o least_o seem_a concernment_n be_v but_o ut_fw-la haec_fw-la 〈◊〉_d quae_fw-la anteà_fw-la that_o the_o same_o thing_n may_v be_v believe_v which_o be_v before_o deliver_v but_o now_o with_o more_o light_n and_o clearness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v now_o explicit_o before_o implicit_o so_o that_o in_o either_o sense_n if_o we_o give_v way_n to_o every_o cavil_v disputant_n to_o deny_v or_o quarrel_v they_o the_o whole_a foundation_n of_o faith_n be_v shake_v moreover_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a it_o be_v mere_o vain_a to_o examine_v her_o decree_n which_o the_o relatour_n require_v to_o be_v do_v to_o see_v if_o she_o have_v not_o add_v novitia_fw-la veteribus_fw-la new_a doctrine_n to_o the_o old_a for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v prove_v when_o we_o speak_v of_o this_o point_n have_v promise_v so_o to_o direct_v she_o as_o she_o can_v err_v will_v never_o permit_v she_o to_o declare_v any_o thing_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o before_o either_o express_v or_o enfold_v and_o employ_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 8._o but_o why_o do_v the_o relator_n print_n catholici_fw-la dogmatis_fw-la in_o great_a letter_n in_o this_o sentence_n of_o lirinensis_n be_v there_o any_o such_o great_a mystery_n in_o these_o word_n yes_o sure_o for_o say_v he_o vincentius_n speak_v there_o de_n catholico_n dogmate_n of_o catholic_a maxim_n well_o but_o though_o dogma_fw-la signify_v a_o maxim_n yet_o sure_o it_o can_v signify_v maxim_n unless_o he_o will_v here_o have_v the_o singular_a number_n signify_v the_o plural_a as_o before_o he_o make_v the_o plural_a signify_v the_o singular_a eye_n it_o but_o it_o be_v for_o his_o lordship_n purpose_n to_o translate_v it_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n and_o that_o be_v sufficient_a for_o have_v he_o put_v it_o in_o the_o singular_a thus_o the_o catholic_a maxim_n that_o be_v as_o he_o expound_v it_o the_o properly_z fundamental_a and_o prime_a truth_n deposit_v in_o the_o church_n there_o will_v have_v seem_v to_o be_v but_o one_o fundamental_a point_n which_o will_v have_v mar_v his_o whole_a design_n now_o because_o he_o hold_v there_o be_v many_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n catholicum_fw-la dogma_fw-la in_o his_o grammar_n can_v signify_v nothing_o less_o than_o catholic_a maxim_n that_o be_v proper_o
yet_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o our_o supernatural_a building_n remain_v firm_a but_o if_o one_o part_n of_o the_o foundation_n be_v shake_v the_o whole_a groundwork_n will_v be_v but_o in_o a_o totter_a condition_n and_o as_o a._n c._n say_v in_o a_o certain_a manner_n shake_v by_o which_o kind_n of_o speech_n i_o conceive_v he_o only_a mean_n that_o by_o question_v or_o deny_v one_o point_n of_o faith_n though_o we_o do_v not_o eo_fw-la ipso_fw-la deny_v all_o other_o direct_o yet_o indirect_o we_o do_v to_o wit_n by_o take_v away_o or_o deny_v all_o authority_n to_o god_n revelation_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n render_v ourselves_o at_o the_o same_o time_n uncapable_a of_o believe_v any_o thing_n else_o with_o supernatural_a and_o divine_a faith_n 9_o his_o lordship_n must_v be_v pardon_v if_o he_o dissent_v from_o a.c's._n assertion_n 16._o that_o all_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v some_o to_o we_o by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o divine_a revelation_n which_o in_o the_o sense_n we_o have_v declare_v his_o lordship_n do_v not_o disprove_v but_o in_o the_o pursuance_n of_o his_o discourse_n he_o bring_v in_o doctor_n stapleton_n as_o contradict_v bellarmin_n because_o bellarmin_n say_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v certain_a by_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n unless_o it_o be_v contain_v immediate_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o deduce_v out_o of_o it_o by_o evident_a consequence_n whereas_o stapleton_n be_v vouch_v to_o affirm_v that_o some_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v without_o a_o evident_a nay_o without_o so_o much_o as_o a_o probable_a testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n i_o have_v seek_v this_o place_n in_o stapleton_n and_o find_v his_o word_n to_o be_v only_o these_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o deny_v our_o assent_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n though_o we_o have_v they_o only_o by_o tradition_n or_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n against_o heretic_n and_o not_o confirm_v with_o evident_a or_o probable_a testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n his_o meaning_n be_v we_o must_v submit_v to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o tradition_n she_o approve_v though_o they_o be_v not_o express_o contain_v in_o scripture_n which_o questionless_a may_v very_o well_o stand_v with_o beauties_n doctrine_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n unless_o it_o be_v either_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o draw_v from_o thence_o by_o evident_a consequence_n for_o that_o bellarmin_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n understand_v not_o only_o god_n write_v but_o his_o not-written_a word_n also_o or_o tradition_n be_v manifest_a because_o he_o make_v all_o our_o faith_n even_o of_o scripture_n itself_o to_o be_v ground_v upon_o it_o as_o be_v clear_a by_o his_o very_a word_n itaque_fw-la hoc_fw-la dogma_fw-la 〈◊〉_d necessarium_fw-la 4._o quod_fw-la scilicit_fw-la sit_fw-la aliqua_fw-la scriptura_fw-la divina_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la sufficientèr_fw-la haberi_fw-la ex_fw-la scripturâ_fw-la proinde_fw-la cum_fw-la fides_n nitatur_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la nisi_fw-la habeamus_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la scriptum_fw-la nulla_fw-la nobis_fw-la erit_fw-la fides_n therefore_o this_o so_o necessary_a maxim_n viz._n that_o there_o be_v any_o divine_a scripture_n at_o all_o can_v sufficient_o be_v have_v by_o scripture_n alone_o wherefore_o see_v faith_n rely_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unless_o we_o have_v a_o word_n of_o god_n not-written_a we_o shall_v have_v no_o faith_n at_o all_o many_o like_a instance_n he_o give_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n of_o other_o matter_n pertain_v to_o christian_a faith_n which_o can_v only_o be_v believe_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not-written_a now_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n he_o teach_v that_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o our_o salvation_n with_o certainty_n of_o faith_n because_o this_o be_v not_o reveal_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n either_o write_v or_o unwritten_a nor_o be_v evident_o deduce_v from_o either_o of_o these_o which_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n but_o no_o way_n contradict_v by_o stapleton_n beside_o a_o proposition_n may_v be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o probable_o express_v in_o scripture_n and_o yet_o be_v infer_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n from_o something_o contain_v in_o scripture_n i_o mean_v infer_v at_o least_o from_o such_o general_a principle_n and_o rule_n as_o the_o scripture_n recommend_v to_o we_o and_o command_v we_o to_o follow_v but_o the_o reason_n the_o bishop_n bring_v to_o prove_v that_o bellarmin_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o write_a word_n be_v very_o strange_a for_o bellarmin_n say_v he_o treat_v there_o of_o the_o knowledge_n a_o man_n can_v have_v of_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o own_o salvation_n and_o i_o hope_v that_o a._n c._n will_v not_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v any_o tradition_n extant_a unwritten_a by_o which_o particular_a man_n may_v have_v assurance_n of_o their_o several_a salvation_n thus_o he_o now_o first_o we_o say_v not_o that_o bellarmin_n speak_v of_o the_o word_n unwritten_a and_o stapleton_n of_o the_o word_n write_v but_o that_o stapleton_n speak_v of_o the_o unwritten_a word_n only_o and_o bellarmin_n of_o both_o the_o write_v and_o unwritten_a word_n which_o he_o call_v the_o complete_a word_n of_o god_n second_o bellarmin_n be_v not_o to_o affirm_v there_o be_v any_o unwritten_a tradition_n by_o which_o particular_a man_n may_v have_v assurance_n of_o their_o several_a salvation_n but_o the_o contrary_a that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o unwriten_v tradition_n to_o be_v find_v for_o have_v he_o intend_v to_o prove_v any_o such_o unwritten_a tradition_n he_o shall_v have_v consequent_o prove_v the_o foresay_a assurance_n to_o be_v infallible_a and_o equal_a to_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o there_o profess_o labour_v to_o prove_v fallible_a and_o not_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n which_o have_v be_v a_o turn_n like_o one_o of_o his_o lordship_n the_o quite_o contrary_a way_n and_o for_o stapleton_n he_o purposely_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o power_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o to_o declare_v and_o explain_v those_o already_o deliver_v his_o lordship_n can_v believe_v that_o all_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n 40._o be_v sufficient_o apply_v by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o though_o it_o be_v of_o the_o same_o fullness_n in_o regard_n of_o itself_o and_o of_o the_o power_n it_o commit_v to_o general_n council_n lawful_o call_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o always_o of_o the_o same_o fullness_n of_o knowledge_n and_o sufficiency_n nor_o of_o the_o same_o fullness_n of_o conscience_n and_o integrity_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o these_o ornament_n of_o knowledge_n sufficiency_n conscience_n and_o integrity_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o infallibility_n either_o in_o the_o church_n or_o council_n for_o that_o proceed_v only_o from_o the_o promise_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v of_o the_o same_o power_n in_o weak_a and_o strong_a instrument_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v of_o themselves_o person_n altogether_o ignorant_a of_o divine_a matter_n yet_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n become_v not_o only_o able_a to_o teach_v they_o but_o also_o infallible_a in_o their_o teach_v neither_o do_v the_o want_n of_o conscience_n or_o integrity_n in_o some_o particular_a person_n deprive_v either_o the_o church_n or_o a_o general_n council_n of_o this_o promise_a infallibility_n any_o more_o than_o the_o same_o want_v deprive_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n in_o old_a time_n of_o their_o authority_n concern_v who_o notwithstanding_o their_o manifest_a and_o great_a defect_n in_o point_n of_o conscience_n and_o integrity_n etc._n etc._n our_o saviour_n himself_o pronounce_v matth._n 23._o 2._o upon_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n have_v sit_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n all_o thing_n therefore_o they_o shall_v say_v to_o you_o observe_v you_o and_o do_v the_o relatour_n again_o repeat_v that_o all_o proposition_n of_o canonical_a 41._o scripture_n be_v not_o alike_o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n but_o this_o be_v answer_v by_o the_o doctrine_n we_o have_v so_o often_o deliver_v to_o clear_v his_o often_o mistake_v touch_v fundamental_o that_o some_o be_v in_o this_o sense_n fundamental_a to_o wit_n of_o necessity_n to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o and_o know_v express_o of_o all_o other_o not_o fundamental_a that_o be_v not_o of_o necessity_n to_o be_v know_v and_o believe_v express_o by_o all_o in_o this_o sense_n i_o say_v we_o agree_v with_o his_o lordship_n and_o his_o party_n touch_v the_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_o and_o not-fundamentals_a our_o only_a controversy_n be_v whether_o there_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n any_o point_n of_o faith_n not-fundamental_a in_o this_o sense_n that_o be_v such_o as_o
be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o we_o as_o point_n of_o faith_n may_v lawful_o that_o be_v without_o peril_n of_o sin_n and_o damnation_n be_v deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o for_o in_o this_o they_o hold_v the_o affirmative_a we_o the_o negative_a the_o reason_n why_o we_o have_v no_o occasion_n in_o this_o controversy_n to_o treat_v this_o distinction_n in_o any_o sense_n save_v this_o be_v because_o it_o relate_v only_o to_o our_o adversary_n who_o maintain_v they_o be_v not_o oblige_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v some_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n make_v in_o lawful_a general_n council_n even_o while_o they_o express_o know_v they_o to_o be_v so_o define_v because_o say_v they_o those_o council_n may_v err_v in_o such_o definition_n by_o reason_n the_o matter_n they_o contain_v be_v not-fundamental_a wherefore_o we_o neither_o say_v nor_o intend_v to_o show_v it_o sub_fw-la anulo_fw-la piscator_fw-la be_v which_o be_v his_o lordship_n term_n that_o it_o be_v as_o necessary_a to_o believe_v st._n peter_n and_o st._n andrew_n be_v make_v fisher_n of_o man_n as_o that_o christ_n die_v and_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n we_o hold_v the_o contrary_a the_o one_o be_v a_o prime_a article_n and_o fundamental_a in_o the_o first_o explicate_v sense_n the_o other_o neither_o prime_n nor_o fundamental_a but_o we_o stand_v to_o this_o that_o whoever_o shall_v find_v in_o scripture_n that_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n andrew_n be_v make_v fisher_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o question_n or_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o can_v for_o that_o time_n believe_v any_o thing_n with_o divine_a faith_n therefore_o in_o the_o second_o sense_n it_o be_v fundamental_a to_o believe_v that_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n andrew_n be_v make_v fisher_n of_o man_n and_o though_o the_o contrary_n shall_v be_v show_v under_o the_o great_a seal_n of_o england_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o now_o if_o the_o belief_n of_o every_o point_n of_o faith_n decree_v by_o the_o church_n be_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n when_o sufficient_o propound_v to_o we_o for_o a_o point_n decree_v by_o the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o believe_v that_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n andrew_n be_v make_v by_o our_o saviour_n fisher_n of_o man_n when_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v to_o we_o as_o clear_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n than_o it_o will_v be_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o be_v as_o much_o a_o fundamental_a point_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o authority_n which_o deliver_v it_o as_o the_o other_o chap._n 4._o the_o conclusion_n of_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n argument_n 1._o what_o point_v fundamental_a what_o not_o a_o necessary_a question_n 2._o the_o apostle_n creed_n confess_o contain_v not_o all_o fundamental_o in_o particular_a 3._o albertus_n magnus_n cite_v to_o small_a purpose_n 4._o a._n c's_o word_n wrest_v in_o defence_n of_o mr._n rogers_n 5._o catharinus_n may_v err_v but_o be_v no_o heretic_n 6._o how_o protestant_n agree_v 7._o a._n c._n mutilated_a the_o second_o time_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o english_a canon_n 8._o english_a protestant_n excommunicate_a catholic_n as_o much_o as_o catholic_n they_o 9_o some_o thing_n contain_v in_o scripture_n express_o not_o evident_o some_o truth_n deduce_v from_o scripture_n direct_o not_o demonstrative_o 10._o baptism_n of_o infant_n not_o demonstrative_o prove_v by_o the_o bishop_n from_o sole_a scripture_n 11._o what_o st._n augustin_n think_v of_o that_o matter_n 12._o the_o bishop_n prove_v to_o contradict_v himself_o 1._o it_o be_v a_o very_a pertinent_a question_n which_o mr._n fisher_n afterward_o 42._o move_v require_v to_o know_v what_o point_v the_o bishop_n will_v account_v fundamental_a for_o if_o he_o will_v have_v some_o fundamental_a which_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n and_o other_o not_o fundamental_a which_o we_o may_v without_o sin_n question_n or_o deny_v it_o behoove_v we_o much_o to_o know_v which_o they_o be_v i_o have_v ever_o desire_v a_o fatisfactory_a answer_n from_o protestant_n to_o this_o question_n but_o can_v never_o yet_o have_v it_o in_o the_o sense_n demand_v 2._o what_o if_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n call_v the_o creed_n the_o only_a foundation_n 3._o it_o contain_v the_o prime_a point_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o all_o be_v oblige_v to_o know_v and_o express_o believe_v yet_o i_o hope_v his_o lordship_n follower_n will_v not_o grant_v that_o we_o may_v question_v or_o deny_v every_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o yet_o this_o must_v be_v do_v if_o the_o creed_n only_o be_v hold_v for_o fundamental_a in_o the_o sense_n the_o question_n be_v propound_v in_o if_o they_o shall_v reply_v that_o not_o only_o those_o point_n be_v fundamental_a which_o be_v express_v in_o the_o creed_n but_o those_o also_o which_o be_v there_o enfold_v by_o this_o mean_v they_o may_v as_o the_o bishop_n speak_v lap_v up_o in_o the_o creed_n all_o 44._o particular_a point_n of_o faith_n whatever_o and_o true_o see_v his_o lordship_n go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o include_v all_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o creed_n there_o appear_v no_o great_a reason_n of_o scruple_n why_o the_o same_o shall_v not_o be_v say_v of_o tradition_n and_o other_o point_n especial_o of_o that_o tradition_n for_o which_o we_o admit_v scripture_n itself_o for_o this_o will_v not_o make_v the_o fold_n much_o large_a than_o it_o be_v before_o and_o if_o it_o do_v yet_o i_o see_v no_o hurt_n in_o it_o but_o let_v we_o brief_o reflect_v how_o well_o the_o bishop_n answer_n satisfy_v the_o question_n propound_v by_o mr._n fisher._n the_o matter_n proceed_v thus_o the_o 2._o jesuit_n have_v say_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v not_o right_a because_o it_o hold_v a_o error_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o bishop_n confess_v that_o what_o the_o greek_n hold_v in_o that_o point_n be_v a_o error_n and_o a_o grievous_a one_o in_o divinity_n but_o not_o fundamental_a and_o so_o hinder_v they_o not_o from_o be_v a_o true_a church_n whereupon_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v whether_o the_o error_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v fundamental_a or_o not_o mr._n fisher_n demand_v of_o the_o bishop_n what_o point_v he_o will_v account_v fundamental_a to_o this_o question_n the_o bishop_n after_o diverse_a artificial_a flourish_n serve_v to_o little_a or_o no_o purpose_n but_o to_o draw_v the_o reader_n attention_n from_o the_o obligation_n he_o have_v to_o give_v a_o perfect_a list_n of_o his_o fundamental_o answer_v all_o point_n in_o the_o creed_n as_o they_o be_v there_o express_v be_v fundamental_a but_o soon_o after_o affirm_v that_o he_o never_o either_o say_v or_o mean_v that_o they_o only_o be_v fundamental_a by_o which_o it_o evident_o appear_v his_o lordship_n neither_o give_v nor_o mean_v to_o give_v a_o categorical_a answer_n to_o the_o question_n but_o do_v industrious_o decline_v it_o while_o grant_v there_o be_v other_o point_v fundamental_a beside_o those_o contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n he_o will_v not_o assign_v they_o in_o particular_a wherefore_o though_o the_o greek_n error_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o any_o point_n express_v in_o the_o creed_n yet_o see_v it_o may_v be_v contrary_a to_o some_o other_o fundamental_a point_n not_o contain_v therein_o mr._n fisher_n must_v needs_o remain_v as_o unsatisfied_a as_o before_o whether_o the_o greek_n err_v in_o a_o fundamental_a point_n or_o not_o be_v not_o this_o fine_a shuffle_n 3._o before_o i_o leave_v this_o §_o i_o shall_v note_v by_o the_o way_n that_o to_o prove_v this_o proposition_n that_o the_o belief_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o infallible_a be_v a_o equal_a or_o rather_o precede_v principle_n of_o faith_n with_o or_o to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o creed_n he_o cite_v albertus_n magnus_n in_o these_o word_n regula_n 〈◊〉_d concor_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d articulis_fw-la fidei_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o concordant_a sense_n of_o scripture_n with_o article_n of_o faith_n now_o first_o here_o be_v nothing_o of_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o infallible_a for_o that_o be_v presuppose_v but_o only_a what_o sense_n the_o scripture_n must_v have_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n second_o here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o of_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o albertus_n hold_v to_o be_v many_o more_o than_o those_o specify_v in_o the_o creed_n three_o this_o sentence_n of_o albertus_n make_v the_o scripture_n no_o further_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n then_o as_o it_o accord_v with_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n first_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n 4._o by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v be_v confute_v whatever_o the_o bishop_n have_v to_o pag._n 44._o where_o mr._n rogers_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o mr._n fisher_n as_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o
please_v then_o to_o any_o severity_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v know_v to_o be_v a_o pious_a mother_n and_o never_o proceed_v to_o excommunication_n but_o when_o obstinacy_n and_o perverseness_n enforce_v she_o as_o to_o what_o the_o bishop_n 51._o object_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n make_v many_o point_n to_o be_v of_o necessary_a belief_n which_o have_v for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n pass_v only_o for_o pious_a opinion_n if_o his_o lordship_n have_v assign_v any_o such_o point_n in_o particular_a they_o shall_v have_v receive_v a_o answer_n the_o relatour_n dislike_v mr._n fisher_n for_o say_v the_o church_n of_o england_n 2._o in_o her_o book_n of_o canon_n excommunicate_v every_o man_n who_o shall_v hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o any_o part_n of_o the_o say_a article_n viz_o the_o 39_o article_n but_o although_o these_o be_v not_o the_o precise_a word_n of_o their_o canon_n yet_o the_o church_n of_o england_n excommunicate_v all_o such_o as_o affirm_v they_o can_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n submit_v unto_o they_o as_o it_o be_v manifest_a she_o do_v by_o the_o very_a canon_n which_o the_o bishop_n cite_v she_o do_v in_o effect_n excommunicate_v all_o that_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o say_a article_n as_o for_o the_o pretend_a severity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o have_v answer_v it_o already_o and_o show_v that_o the_o freedom_n and_o liberty_n grant_v by_o her_o enemy_n will_v afford_v no_o more_o prosperity_n to_o she_o than_o it_o have_v do_v to_o they_o it_o be_v true_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o his_o lordship_n take_v notice_n impose_v her_o doctrine_n 52._o upon_o the_o whole_a world_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n but_o it_o be_v not_o in_o her_o power_n to_o do_v otherwise_o because_o christ_n himself_o have_v command_v she_o so_o to_o do_v in_o these_o word_n matth._n 18._o 17._o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n 7._o his_o exception_n here_o against_o a._n c._n be_v but_o as_o so_o many_o meander_n for_o first_o he_o say_v that_o the_o word_n object_v by_o a._n c._n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n i_o answer_v nor_o do_v a._n c._n affirm_v they_o be_v second_o he_o add_v and_o perhaps_o not_o the_o sense_n because_o private_o hold_v within_o himself_o and_o bold_o and_o public_o affirm_v be_v different_a thing_n true_a but_o where_o do_v a._n c._n mention_v those_o word_n private_o hold_v within_o himself_o or_o where_o do_v the_o canon_n say_v bold_o and_o public_o affirm_v as_o the_o bishop_n will_v impose_v on_o the_o reader_n and_o as_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o article_n the_o bishop_n himself_o dare_v not_o bold_o and_o public_o affirm_v that_o a._n c._n miss_v it_o but_o say_v only_o perhaps_o he_o do_v and_o then_o perhaps_o he_o do_v not_o but_o without_o all_o perhaps_o and_o peradventure_o he_o give_v the_o genuine_a sense_n of_o the_o canon_n see_v be_v against_o all_o reason_n to_o imagine_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v hold_v punishable_a with_o excommunication_n for_o a_o mere_a internal_a act._n he_o must_v mean_v therefore_o by_o the_o word_n hold_v a_o external_a act_n which_o can_v amount_v to_o less_o than_o affirm_v 8._o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o english_a congregation_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v more_o severe_a but_o whether_o the_o english_a protestant_n severity_n in_o excommunicate_v those_o that_o affirm_v any_o part_n of_o the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o unreasonable_a suppose_v she_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n in_o define_v those_o article_n for_o what_o be_v it_o less_o than_o unreasonable_a tyranny_n to_o cast_v man_n out_o of_o their_o church_n which_o they_o esteem_v a_o true_a one_o deliver_v they_o up_o to_o satan_n and_o lay_v god_n and_o their_o church_n curse_n upon_o they_o for_o affirm_v that_o to_o be_v erroneous_a which_o for_o aught_o they_o know_v may_v possible_o be_v such_o indeed_o especial_o when_o the_o impugner_n full_o persuade_v himself_o that_o what_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v erroneous_a in_o they_o be_v real_o so_o for_o excommunication_n be_v the_o most_o grievous_a punishment_n the_o church_n can_v inflict_v must_v require_v a_o crime_n proportionable_a to_o it_o but_o can_v any_o man_n persuade_v himself_o that_o to_o oppose_v a_o doctrine_n against_o which_o the_o opposer_n very_o persuade_v himself_o he_o have_v either_o a_o evidence_n from_o scripture_n or_o a_o demonstrative_a reason_n in_o which_o case_n the_o bishop_n grant_v that_o one_o may_v yea_o ought_v to_o oppugn_v the_o church_n error_n can_v any_o man_n i_o say_v persuade_v himself_o that_o this_o be_v a_o crime_n proportionable_a or_o a_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o excommunication_n every_o just_a excommunication_n therefore_o inflict_v for_o the_o oppose_a of_o doctrine_n must_v necessary_o suppose_v the_o doctrine_n oppose_v to_o be_v infallible_o true_a and_o absolute_o exempt_v from_o error_n otherwise_o the_o sentence_n itself_o will_v be_v unreasonable_a and_o unjust_a as_o want_v sufficient_a ground_n whence_o likewise_o it_o follow_v that_o protestant_n while_o they_o confess_v on_o the_o one_o side_n that_o all_o their_o thirty_o nine_o article_n be_v not_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o by_o consequence_n in_o their_o sense_n and_o according_a to_o their_o principle_n not_o infallible_o true_a but_o subject_a to_o error_n yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n proceed_v to_o excommunication_n against_o any_o that_o affirm_v they_o or_o any_o part_n of_o they_o to_o be_v superstitious_a or_o erroneous_a do_v themselves_o exercise_v a_o great_a tyranny_n and_o injustice_n towards_o their_o people_n than_o they_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n or_o pretence_n of_o reason_n charge_v upon_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o as_o they_o well_o know_v excommunicate_v no_o man_n but_o for_o deny_v such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v both_o infallible_o true_a and_o also_o fundamental_a at_o least_o according_a to_o the_o formal_a object_n as_o little_o be_v it_o the_o question_n whether_o the_o roman_a church_n excommunication_n be_v of_o a_o much_o large_a extent_n than_o those_o of_o the_o english_a protestant_n for_o this_o argue_v no_o more_o then_o that_o one_o be_v the_o universal_a church_n the_o other_o not_o but_o the_o question_n be_v as_o have_v be_v say_v whether_o protestant_n excommunication_n be_v not_o unreasonable_a nay_o most_o enormous_a as_o inflict_v by_o those_o who_o acknowledge_v themselves_o fallible_a and_o subject_a to_o error_n in_o that_o very_a point_n for_o which_o they_o excommunicate_v again_o as_o to_o the_o large_a extent_n of_o our_o excommunication_n may_v not_o the_o same_o have_v be_v object_v against_o the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o by_o any_o particular_a heretical_a conventicle_n in_o those_o time_n to_o wit_n that_o their_o pretend_v excommunication_n reach_v no_o further_a than_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o own_o private_a congregation_n whereas_o the_o apostolical_a excommunication_n extend_v to_o the_o utmost_a limit_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_n world_n what_o follow_v have_v be_v often_o answer_v for_o we_o grant_v the_o scripture_n 52._o be_v sufficient_a for_o some_o man_n salvation_n if_o we_o regard_v the_o material_a object_n only_o or_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o faith_n because_o all_o the_o prime_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v express_v in_o scripture_n which_o prime_a article_n be_v fundamental_a only_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n so_o often_o declare_v but_o hence_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o some_o thing_n not_o express_v in_o scripture_n be_v not_o fundamental_a in_o the_o second_o sense_n former_o deliver_v among_o these_o tradition_n must_v be_v number_v for_o which_o we_o admit_v scripture_n itself_o in_o this_o true_o to_o use_v his_o lordship_n rhetoric_n the_o father_n be_v plain_a the_o schoolman_n be_v not_o strangeis_n and_o stapleton_n who_o he_o style_v a_o angry_a opposite_a confess_v as_o much_o moreover_o where_o there_o be_v any_o difficulty_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o point_n to_o be_v believe_v we_o be_v not_o so_o to_o stand_v to_o scripture_n as_o that_o we_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n appoint_v by_o christ_n to_o interpret_v it_o and_o to_o declare_v what_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v for_o otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o controversy_n every_o heretic_n pretend_v scripture_n and_o cry_v it_o up_o as_o much_o as_o the_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o of_o his_o party_n can_v do_v nor_o can_v the_o church_n obtrude_v any_o thing_n as_o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n 53._o which_o be_v not_o so_o in_o itself_o she_o be_v infallible_a as_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v prove_v the_o bishop_n here_o wrongful_o suppose_v the_o contrary_a mr._n fisher_n say_v it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ground_n her_o positive_a article_n
that_o god_n speak_v they_o which_o we_o can_v never_o elevate_v our_o heart_n to_o believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n church_n which_o give_v we_o a_o full_a assurance_n of_o his_o revelation_n thus_o than_o the_o church_n be_v supernatural_o infallible_a in_o all_o her_o definition_n of_o faith_n will_v be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o ascertain_v we_o of_o those_o holy_a write_n which_o god_n by_o unwritten_a tradition_n reveal_v to_o the_o church_n in_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v his_o write_a word_n for_o if_o her_o definition_n herein_o be_v absolute_o infallible_a than_o what_o she_o define_v as_o reveal_v from_o god_n to_o be_v his_o write_a word_n be_v undoubted_o such_o insomuch_o that_o christian_n be_v irrefregable_o assure_v thereof_o by_o the_o church_n infallible_a declaration_n believe_v this_o article_n with_o divine_a faith_n because_o reveal_v from_o god_n who_o can_v deceive_v they_o that_o revelation_n be_v the_o only_a formal_a object_n into_o which_o they_o resolve_v their_o faith_n and_o the_o church_n assurance_n the_o ground_n to_o persuade_v they_o that_o it_o be_v infallible_o a_o divine_a revelation_n or_o tradition_n the_o church_n definition_n therefore_o be_v like_o approximation_n in_o the_o work_n of_o natural_a cause_n to_o wit_n a_o necessary_a condition_n prerequire_v to_o their_o work_n by_o their_o own_o natural_a force_n yet_o be_v itself_o no_o cause_n but_o a_o application_n only_o of_o the_o efficient_a cause_n to_o the_o subject_n on_o which_o it_o work_v see_v nothing_o can_v work_v immediate_o on_o what_o be_v distant_a from_o it_o thus_o god_n revelation_n deliver_v to_o the_o church_n without_o writing_n be_v and_o be_v the_o only_a formal_a cause_n of_o our_o assent_n in_o divine_a faith_n but_o because_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v distant_a from_o we_o have_v be_v deliver_v that_o be_v reveal_v so_o many_o age_n past_a they_o be_v approximate_v or_o immediate_o apply_v to_o we_o by_o the_o infallible_a declaration_n of_o the_o present_a church_n which_o still_o confirm_v by_o her_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n what_o be_v first_o reveal_v make_v it_o as_o firm_o believe_v by_o we_o as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o primitive_a christian_n to_o who_o it_o be_v first_o reveal_v so_o a_o commonwealth_n by_o still_o maintain_v practise_v and_o approve_v the_o law_n enact_v in_o its_o first_o institution_n make_v they_o as_o much_o observe_v and_o esteem_v by_o the_o people_n in_o all_o succeed_a age_n for_o their_o primitive_a law_n as_o they_o be_v by_o those_o who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o first_o institution_n hence_o it_o appear_v our_o faith_n rest_v only_o upon_o god_n immediate_a revelation_n as_o its_o formal_a object_n though_o the_o church_n voice_n be_v a_o condition_n so_o necessary_a for_o its_o rest_v thereon_o that_o it_o can_v never_o attain_v that_o formal_a object_n without_o it_o by_o which_o discourse_n the_o bishop_n argument_n be_v solve_v as_o also_o his_o text_n out_o of_o aristotle_n for_o see_v here_o be_v no_o scientifical_a proof_n per_fw-la principia_fw-la intrinseca_fw-la there_o can_v be_v no_o necessary_a and_o natural_a connexion_n of_o principle_n evidence_v the_o thing_n prove_v as_o be_v require_v in_o demonstrative_a knowledge_n the_o thing_n itself_o which_o be_v believe_v remain_v still_o obscure_a and_o all_o the_o assurance_n we_o have_v of_o it_o depend_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o he_o that_o testify_v it_o unto_o we_o last_o hence_o be_v solve_v the_o authority_n of_o canus_n cite_v also_o by_o his_o lordship_n who_o only_o affirm_v what_o i_o have_v here_o confess_v viz._n that_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o resolve_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o it_o and_o that_o of_o pag._n 65._o where_o he_o contend_v that_o the_o church_n give_v not_o the_o truth_n and_o authority_n to_o the_o scripture_n but_o only_o teach_v they_o with_o infallible_a certainty_n to_o be_v canonical_a or_o the_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n the_o very_a same_o thing_n with_o what_o i_o here_o maintain_v the_o church_n authority_n then_o be_v more_o know_v unto_o we_o than_o the_o scripture_n may_v well_o be_v some_o reason_n of_o our_o admit_v they_o yet_o the_o scripture_n still_o retain_v their_o prerogative_n above_o the_o church_n for_o be_v god_n immediate_a revelation_n they_o require_v a_o great_a respect_n and_o reverence_n than_o the_o mere_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n whence_o it_o be_v likewise_o that_o our_o author_n do_v here_o common_o distinguish_v two_o sort_n of_o certainty_n the_o one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o other_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la subjecti_fw-la the_o first_o proceed_v from_o the_o clearness_n of_o the_o object_n the_o other_o from_o the_o adhesion_n as_o philosopher_n call_v it_o of_o the_o will_n which_o make_v the_o understanding_n stick_v so_o close_o to_o the_o object_n that_o it_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o it_o this_o latter_a kind_n of_o certainty_n have_v chief_o place_n in_o faith_n a_o thing_n unknown_a to_o aristotle_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o when_o we_o believe_v we_o do_v adhere_v more_o firm_o to_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n then_o to_o any_o principle_n whatsoever_o though_o evident_a to_o natural_a reason_n which_o firm_a adhesion_n of_o we_o be_v ground_v partly_o on_o the_o greatness_n and_o nobleness_n of_o the_o object_n and_o partly_o on_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v such_o that_o our_o salvation_n depend_v upon_o it_o for_o that_o immediate_a revelation_n namely_o the_o scripture_n be_v in_o itself_o of_o so_o much_o great_a worth_n and_o dignity_n than_o the_o church_n mere_a tradition_n do_v worthy_o more_o draw_v our_o affection_n than_o the_o other_o notwithstanding_o the_o other_o be_v more_o know_v to_o we_o and_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o admit_v he_o thus_o we_o have_v show_v that_o we_o hold_v not_o the_o church_n definition_n for_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o relatour_n by_o dispute_v so_o much_o against_o it_o will_v seem_v to_o impose_v on_o we_o though_o our_o present_a faith_n it_o be_v true_a rely_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o infallible_a witness_n both_o of_o the_o write_v and_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o formal_a object_n wherefore_o when_o we_o say_v we_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n we_o profess_v to_o believe_v not_o only_o the_o thing_n which_o she_o teach_v but_o the_o church_n herself_o so_o teach_v as_o a_o infallible_a witness_n and_o the_o contrary_n we_o shall_v never_o believe_v till_o it_o be_v prove_v otherwise_o then_o by_o say_v as_o the_o bishop_n here_o do_v it_o be_v no_o hard_a thing_n to_o prove_v by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v it_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v no_o devise_n or_o cunning_a at_o all_o as_o the_o relatour_n will_v have_v it_o think_v of_o we_o either_o in_o take_v away_o any_o thing_n due_a to_o the_o father_n council_n or_o scripture_n or_o in_o give_v too_o much_o to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n for_o we_o acknowledge_v all_o due_a respect_n to_o the_o father_n and_o as_o much_o to_o speak_v modest_o as_o any_o of_o our_o adversary_n party_n but_o they_o must_v pardon_v we_o if_o we_o prefer_v the_o general_a interpretation_n of_o the_o present_a church_n before_o the_o result_n of_o any_o man_n particular_a fancy_n as_o for_o scripture_n we_o ever_o extol_v it_o above_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v in_o many_o place_n so_o obscure_a that_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o its_o true_a sense_n without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o live_n infallible_a judge_n to_o determine_v and_o declare_v it_o which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o present_a church_n and_o what_o we_o say_v of_o scripture_n may_v with_o proportion_n be_v apply_v to_o ancient_a general_n council_n for_o though_o we_o willing_o submit_v to_o they_o all_o yet_o where_o they_o happen_v to_o be_v obscure_a in_o matter_n require_v determination_n we_o seek_v the_o assistance_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o same_o live_a infallible_a rule_n viz._n the_o tradition_n or_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o present_a church_n this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o our_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v osten_v intimate_v it_o be_v evident_a the_o cunning_a of_o the_o device_n the_o bishop_n speak_v of_o be_v none_o of_o we_o but_o his_o own_o while_o he_o false_o charge_v we_o that_o we_o final_o resolve_v all_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n council_n and_o scripture_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n whereas_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n we_o ever_o resolve_v they_o final_o into_o god_n word_n ibidem_fw-la or_o divine_a revelation_n though_o we_o must_v of_o necessity_n repair_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o have_v they_o infallible_o testify_v unto_o we_o but_o
lordship_n argument_n that_o the_o whole_a may_v err_v because_o every_o part_n may_v err_v be_v disprove_v by_o himself_o because_o in_o fundamental_o he_o grant_v the_o whole_a church_n can_v err_v and_o yet_o that_o any_o particular_a man_n may_v err_v even_o in_o those_o point_n wherefore_o he_o must_v needs_o agree_v with_o we_o in_o this_o that_o the_o perfection_n of_o infallibility_n may_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n though_o not_o to_o every_o particular_a member_n thereof_o now_o further_o concern_v the_o church_n infallibility_n though_o she_o be_v so_o tie_v to_o mean_n as_o that_o she_o be_v bind_v to_o use_v they_o yet_o in_o her_o definition_n she_o receive_v not_o her_o infallibility_n from_o the_o mean_n as_o the_o bishop_n must_v also_o affirm_v of_o his_o fundamental_o but_o from_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n promise_v to_o the_o church_n which_o make_v her_o definition_n true_o infallible_a though_o they_o be_v not_o new_a revelation_n but_o only_a declaration_n of_o what_o be_v former_o reveal_v for_o as_o the_o immediate_a revelation_n itself_o be_v for_o no_o other_o reason_n infallible_a but_o because_o it_o proceed_v from_o god_n and_o in_o case_n it_o shall_v happen_v to_o be_v not_o true_a and_o certain_a the_o error_n will_v be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n so_o in_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n if_o she_o shall_v fall_v into_o error_n it_o will_v likewise_o be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n himself_o neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a for_o we_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v god_n immediate_a revelation_n as_o if_o the_o definition_n be_v false_a god_n revelation_n must_v be_v also_o such_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o we_o to_o aver_v that_o god_n promise_v will_v be_v infringe_v as_o true_o it_o will_v in_o that_o supposition_n for_o do_v he_o not_o so_o preserve_v his_o church_n in_o her_o definition_n of_o faith_n by_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o that_o she_o shall_v never_o define_v any_o thing_n for_o a_o point_n of_o catholic_n faith_n which_o be_v not_o reveal_v from_o god_n it_o will_v imply_v a_o destruction_n of_o god_n veracity_n and_o make_v he_o deny_v himself_o all_o which_o doctrine_n be_v so_o well_o ground_v on_o christ_n promise_n assure_v we_o he_o will_v always_o assist_v his_o church_n that_o the_o bishop_n have_v little_a reason_n to_o accuse_v we_o of_o rather_o maintain_v a_o party_n then_o seek_v truth_n as_o though_o we_o set_v doctrine_n on_o foot_n to_o foment_n division_n and_o be_v rather_o lead_v by_o animosity_n than_o reason_n chap._n 6._o no_o unquestionable_a assurance_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n but_o for_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n argument_n 1._o apostolical_a tradition_n be_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n and_o eight_o instance_n concern_v they_o witness_v by_o st._n augustin_n 2._o many_o thing_n speak_v by_o our_o saviour_n not_o deliver_v by_o way_n of_o tradition_n to_o the_o church_n and_o many_o church-tradition_n not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 3._o tradition_n not_o know_v by_o its_o own_o light_n any_o more_o than_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 4._o the_o private_a spirit_n hold_v by_o calvin_n and_o whitaker_n for_o the_o sole_a motive_n of_o believe_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 5._o a_o dialogue_n between_o the_o bishop_n and_o a_o heathen_a philosopher_n 6._o the_o case_n of_o a_o christian_a die_v without_o sight_n of_o scripture_n 7._o occam_n saint_n augustin_n canus_n almain_n and_o gerson_n either_o miscit_v or_o their_o sense_n pervert_v by_o the_o bishop_n 1._o the_o bishop_n have_v be_v hardly_o put_v to_o it_o in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n to_o find_v some_o way_n whereby_o to_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o continual_o tread_v on_o the_o brink_n of_o a_o circle_n at_o length_n fall_v on_o the_o unwritten_a word_n it_o seem_v he_o be_v afraid_a he_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o come_v stoop_v to_o the_o church_n to_o show_v it_o he_o and_o final_o depend_v on_o her_o authority_n but_o be_v loath_a to_o trust_v she_o he_o grow_v so_o wary_a that_o he_o will_v admit_v no_o unwritten_a word_n but_o what_o be_v show_v he_o deliver_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n will_v he_o read_v it_o in_o their_o book_n now_o if_o you_o harken_v to_o his_o discourse_n he_o present_o cry_v out_o he_o can_v swallow_v into_o his_o belief_n that_o every_o thing_n which_o his_o adversary_n say_v be_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n be_v so_o indeed_o nor_o be_v it_o our_o desire_n he_o shall_v but_o we_o crave_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n patience_n to_o hear_v reason_n according_a to_o which_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o there_o must_v be_v some_o authority_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o this_o main_a principle_n of_o faith_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o our_o ensurancer_n be_v apostolical_a tradition_n and_o well_o may_v it_o be_v so_o for_o such_o tradition_n declare_v by_o the_o church_n be_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n we_o do_v not_o pretend_v as_o the_o bishop_n object_n that_o every_o doctrine_n which_o any_o particular_a person_n as_o a._n c._n bellarmin_n or_o other_o private_a doctor_n may_v please_v to_o call_v tradition_n be_v therefore_o to_o be_v receive_v as_o god_n unwritten_a word_n but_o such_o doctrinal_a tradition_n only_o as_o be_v warrant_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n for_o true_o apostolical_a which_o be_v consequent_o god_n unwritten_a word_n of_o which_o kind_n be_v those_o which_o not_o i_o but_o st._n augustin_n judge_v to_o be_v such_o in_o his_o time_n and_o have_v ever_o since_o be_v conserve_v and_o esteem_v such_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ._n the_o first_o apostolical_a tradition_n name_v by_o saint_n augustin_n be_v that_o we_o now_o treat_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 5._o he_o affirm_v he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n but_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n move_v he_o thereto_o and_o stick_v so_o close_o to_o her_o authority_n that_o he_o say_v ibid._n if_o any_o clear_a testimony_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o scripture_n against_o the_o church_n he_o will_v neither_o believe_v the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o church_n ibidem_fw-la nay_o that_o he_o as_o much_o believe_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o gospel_n itself_o because_o the_o same_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n assure_v he_o both_o of_o the_o one_o &_o the_o other_o a_o second_o tradition_n be_v 174._o that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o beget_v of_o any_o other_o person_n a_o three_o 84._o that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n be_v and_o remain_v always_o a_o virgin_n both_o before_z in_o and_o after_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n st._n augustin_n term_v helvidius_n his_o opinion_n who_o deny_v it_o a_o blasphemy_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n insert_v he_o in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o heretic_n the_o four_o 23._o that_o those_o who_o be_v baptise_a by_o heretic_n be_v not_o to_o be_v rebaptise_v the_o five_o 23._o that_o infant_n be_v to_o be_v baptize_v the_o six_o finem_fw-la that_o child_n baptise_a be_v to_o be_v number_v among_o the_o faithful_a the_o seven_o januar._n that_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v fast_v the_o eight_o temp._n that_o sunday_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v holy_a by_o christian_n it_o be_v so_o natural_a to_o protestant_n to_o build_v upon_o false_a ground_n that_o they_o can_v enter_v into_o a_o question_n without_o suppose_v a_o falsehood_n so_o his_o lordship_n here_o feed_v his_o humour_n and_o obtrude_v many_o he_o make_v bellarmin_n and_o all_o catholic_a doctor_n maintain_v that_o whatever_o they_o please_v to_o call_v tradition_n must_v present_o be_v receive_v by_o all_o as_o god_n unwritten_a word_n after_o he_o keep_v a_o flutter_v between_o tradition_n and_o the_o unwritten_a word_n ask_v if_o they_o be_v convertible_a term_n and_o than_o whether_o any_o word_n of_o god_n be_v unwritten_a etc._n etc._n which_o digressive_a discourse_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o new_a turn_v in_o his_o labyrinth_n to_o avoid_v the_o foil_n he_o foresee_v himself_o in_o danger_n of_o in_o case_n he_o do_v here_o grapple_v with_o bellarmin_n who_o clear_o deliver_v his_o doctrine_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n cap._n 2._o viz._n that_o the_o word_n tradition_n be_v general_a and_o signify_v any_o doctrine_n communicate_v from_o one_o to_o another_o whether_o it_o be_v write_v or_o unwritten_a by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a he_o make_v not_o tradition_n and_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n convertible_a afterward_o he_o divide_v tradition_n into_o divine_a apostolical_a and_o ecclesiastical_a and_o again_o into_o tradition_n belong_v to_o faith_n and_o tradition_n belong_v to_o manner_n so_o that_o
according_a to_o bellarmin_n it_o be_v clear_a there_o be_v some_o tradition_n which_o be_v not_o god_n unwritten_a word_n nevertheless_o bellarmin_n a._n c._n and_o all_o catholic_n agree_v against_o the_o bishop_n that_o we_o believe_v by_o divine_a faith_n that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o word_n of_o god_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o this_o point_n but_o the_o tradition_n deliver_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n and_o that_o such_o tradition_n so_o deliver_v must_v be_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n i_o say_v such_o tradition_n for_o that_o we_o admit_v in_o practice_n divers_a ecclesiastical_a tradition_n but_o neither_o in_o quality_n of_o god_n word_n or_o divine_a tradition_n nor_o be_v any_o of_o they_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o write_v or_o unwritten_a 2._o now_o to_o return_v to_o his_o lordship_n we_o grant_v there_o be_v many_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n never_o deliver_v over_o to_o the_o church_n for_o aught_o appear_v and_o that_o there_o be_v many_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n yet_o not_o contrary_a to_o it_o wherefore_o his_o lordship_n may_v herein_o have_v spare_v his_o labour_n since_o he_o prove_v but_o what_o we_o grant_v and_o if_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v by_o tradition_n some_o word_n of_o christ_n not_o write_v as_o well_o as_o write_v and_o have_v deliver_v they_o by_o tradition_n to_o her_o child_n such_o write_v and_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n can_v be_v contrary_a to_o one_o another_o for_o as_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o define_v what_o be_v write_v so_o be_v she_o also_o infallible_a in_o define_v what_o be_v not_o write_v and_o so_o she_o can_v neither_o tradere_fw-la non_fw-la traditum_fw-la as_o the_o bishop_n urge_v that_o be_v make_v tradition_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o deliver_v to_o she_o nor_o can_v she_o be_v unfaithful_a to_o god_n in_o not_o faithful_o keep_v the_o depositum_fw-la commit_v to_o she_o trust._n neither_o can_v her_o son_n ever_o just_o accuse_v she_o of_o the_o contrary_a as_o he_o insinuate_v they_o may_v but_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v her_o tradition_n because_o she_o be_v infallible_a the_o tradition_n she_o deliver_v can_v never_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o their_o father_n now_o whereas_o the_o bishop_n so_o confident_o averr_v that_o wherever_o christ_n hold_v his_o peace_n and_o that_o his_o word_n be_v not_o register_v no_o man_n may_v dare_v without_o rashness_n to_o say_v they_o be_v these_o or_o these_o his_o lordship_n must_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o tell_v he_o i_o must_v bind_v up_o his_o whole_a assertion_n with_o this_o proviso_n but_o according_a as_o the_o church_n shall_v declare_v for_o it_o be_v her_o authority_n whereon_o we_o depend_v to_o know_v when_o and_o in_o what_o christ_n hold_v his_o peace_n or_o whether_o his_o word_n some_o or_o none_o be_v register_v as_o much_o as_o we_o depend_v on_o she_o to_o know_v whether_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o not_o this_o our_o proceed_n do_v unqestionable_o free_v we_o from_o all_o shadow_n of_o rashness_n neither_o do_v st._n augustin_n say_v any_o thing_n in_o contradiction_n hereof_o for_o he_o only_o speak_v against_o determine_v of_o a_o man_n own_o head_n what_o be_v speak_v by_o christ_n without_o ground_n or_o warrant_v from_o the_o church_n in_o like_a manner_n we_o grant_v there_o be_v many_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v never_o deliver_v over_o to_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o never_o esteem_v tradition_n as_o there_o be_v many_o tradition_n according_a to_o bellarmin_n which_o we_o can_v own_v for_o god_n unwritten_a word_n yet_o all_o such_o as_o the_o church_n receive_v be_v conformable_a at_o least_o not_o contrary_a to_o his_o word_n write_v or_o unwritten_a such_o be_v the_o ceremony_n use_v in_o baptism_n of_o which_o the_o relatour_n here_o speak_v for_o the_o party_n to_o be_v baptize_v be_v anoint_v to_o signify_v that_o like_o a_o wrestler_n he_o be_v to_o enter_v the_o list_n so_o st._n chrysostom_n coloss_n inungitur_fw-la baptizandus_fw-la more_fw-it athletarum_fw-la qui_fw-la stadium_fw-la jam_fw-la ingressuri_fw-la sunt_fw-la hospital_n be_v apply_v to_o their_o ear_n and_o nostril_n as_o st._n ambrose_n 1._o say_v in_o imitation_n of_o that_o our_o saviour_n do_v mark_v 7._o who_o spit_v touch_v the_o tongue_n and_o put_v his_o finger_n into_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o deaf_a and_o dumb_a man_n before_o he_o cure_v he_o the_o like_a he_o do_v john_n 9_o 3._o to_o the_o blind_a man_n wherefore_o these_o ceremony_n be_v conformable_a to_o scripture_n three_o dipping_n be_v use_v in_o baptism_n to_o signify_v the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n or_o our_o saviour_n remain_v for_o three_o day_n in_o the_o sepulchre_n as_o st._n gregory_n leandr_n teach_v but_o this_o ceremony_n be_v not_o use_v at_o all_o time_n nor_o in_o all_o place_n as_o be_v not_o absolute_o command_v by_o the_o church_n wherefore_o 9_o bellarmin_n who_o prove_v the_o ceremony_n use_v in_o baptism_n to_o be_v apostolical_a tradition_n say_v not_o that_o every_o tradition_n be_v god_n unwritten_a word_n but_o that_o we_o must_v necessary_o believe_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o see_v we_o can_v believe_v for_o any_o write_a word_n of_o he_o we_o must_v either_o admit_v some_o word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v to_o ground_v this_o our_o belief_n on_o which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o apostolical_a tradition_n apply_v to_o we_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n or_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o divine_a faith_n at_o all_o of_o this_o point_n because_o all_o divine_a faith_n must_v rely_v upon_o some_o word_n of_o god_n the_o bishop_n therefore_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o go_v on_o with_o his_o enquiry_n but_o must_v either_o fix_v here_o or_o he_o will_v find_v no_o firm_a ground_n whereon_o to_o rest_v his_o foot_n as_o will_v appear_v both_o by_o the_o other_o way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n by_o he_o confute_v and_o by_o his_o own_o which_o be_v every_o whit_n as_o confutable_a 3._o for_o the_o second_o way_n of_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v full_o and_o sufficient_o know_v as_o by_o divine_a and_o infallible_a 69._o testimony_n lumine_fw-la proprio_fw-la by_o the_o sole_a resplendency_n of_o the_o light_n it_o have_v in_o itself_o and_o by_o the_o witness_n it_o can_v so_o give_v to_o itself_o this_o the_o relatour_n himself_o sufficient_o confute_v and_o we_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o the_o confutation_n however_o though_o the_o bishop_n know_v full_a well_o that_o we_o deny_v this_o doctrine_n of_o know_v scripture_n for_o god_n word_n by_o its_o own_o light_n as_o much_o as_o himself_o or_o any_o of_o his_o party_n can_v do_v yet_o as_o it_o be_v to_o justify_v the_o more_o my_o late_a accusation_n of_o his_o obtrude_a falsehood_n to_o asperse_v we_o he_o will_v needs_o suppose_v another_o here_o viz._n that_o the_o say_a doctrine_n may_v well_o agree_v with_o our_o ground_n in_o regard_n we_o hold_v if_o you_o will_v believe_v he_o that_o tradition_n may_v be_v know_v for_o god_n word_n by_o its_o own_o light_n and_o consequent_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o scripture_n which_o inference_n indeed_o will_v be_v true_a be_v it_o not_o draw_v from_o a_o false_a supposition_n as_o most_o certain_o it_o be_v for_o all_o catholic_n hold_v it_o ridiculous_a to_o believe_v that_o either_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n be_v discernible_a for_o god_n word_n by_o its_o own_o lustre_n nor_o be_v a._n c._n just_o accusable_a in_o this_o point_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v make_v he_o by_o misconstrue_v his_o word_n to_o signify_v that_o tradition_n be_v discernible_a by_o its_o own_o light_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o a._n c_n word_n even_o as_o they_o be_v lame_o cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n do_v sufficient_o vindicate_v he_o 71._o from_o have_v any_o such_o meaning_n as_o his_o lordship_n will_v impose_v on_o he_o the_o cite_a word_n be_v these_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o a_o company_n which_o by_o its_o own_o light_n show_v itself_o to_o be_v infallible_o assist_v etc._n etc._n where_o any_o man_n may_v easy_o see_v that_o the_o word_n which_o must_v proper_o relate_v to_o the_o immediate_a precede_a word_n company_n even_o to_o make_v sense_n and_o not_o to_o the_o more_o remote_a word_n tradition_n it_o be_v therefore_o clear_a that_o a._n c_n intention_n be_v only_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v know_v by_o her_o motive_n of_o credibility_n which_o ever_o accompany_v she_o and_o may_v very_o proper_o be_v call_v she_o own_o light_n as_o concern_v the_o question_n propound_v by_o mr._n fisher_n to_o be_v answer_v by_o dr._n
w._n i_o find_v not_o one_o word_n of_o tradition_n be_v know_v by_o its_o own_o light_n in_o it_o if_o therefore_o this_o proposition_n that_o a_o tradition_n may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v such_o that_o be_v to_o be_v god_n unwritten_a word_n by_o the_o light_n it_o have_v in_o itself_o be_v a_o matter_n to_o be_v make_v sport_n with_o as_o the_o bishop_n say_v it_o be_v we_o shall_v not_o grudge_v he_o the_o mirth_n he_o may_v have_v find_v in_o his_o own_o fiction_n but_o before_o i_o leave_v this_o point_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o consider_v what_o the_o relatour_n grant_v viz._n that_o the_o church_n now_o admit_v of_o st._n james_n and_o st._n 12._o jude_n epistle_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n which_o be_v not_o receive_v for_o divers_a year_n after_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n yet_o will_v he_o elsewhere_o conclude_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o it_o have_v 〈◊〉_d in_o receive_v more_o book_n into_o the_o canon_n than_o be_v receive_v in_o ruffinus_n his_o time_n but_o if_o according_a to_o he_o some_o book_n be_v now_o to_o be_v admit_v without_o error_n for_o canonical_a which_o be_v not_o always_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o certain_o without_o error_n also_o and_o upon_o the_o same_o authority_n some_o book_n may_v now_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o canon_n which_o be_v not_o so_o in_o ruffinus_n his_o time_n but_o this_o only_a by_o way_n of_o digression_n as_o for_o the_o three_o way_n of_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o private_a spirit_n it_o be_v true_a the_o bishop_n profess_v to_o reject_v the_o frenzy_n as_o he_o call_v it_o of_o private_a revelation_n except_o in_o some_o extraordinary_a circumstance_n both_o as_o a_o thing_n that_o will_v render_v a_o man_n obnoxious_a to_o all_o the_o whisper_n of_o a_o seduce_a private_a spirit_n and_o from_o whence_o can_v be_v 74._o draw_v no_o proof_n to_o other_o be_v as_o he_o say_v neither_o see_v nor_o feel_v of_o any_o but_o he_o that_o have_v it_o yet_o concern_v this_o point_n he_o deliver_v himself_o in_o such_o a_o rove_a way_n of_o discourse_n as_o signify_v nothing_o in_o effect_n to_o what_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o drive_v at_o and_o so_o leave_v the_o reader_n whole_o unsatisfied_a how_o to_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n infallible_o without_o recourse_n at_o last_o to_o the_o private_a spirit_n nor_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o he_o to_o free_v himself_o from_o that_o imputation_n of_o recur_v to_o the_o private_a spirit_n against_o any_o that_o shall_v press_v the_o business_n home_o notwithstanding_o he_o brag_v to_o the_o contrary_a and_o his_o thanks_o to_o a._n c._n who_o imperfectly-cited_n word_n he_o will_v fain_o improve_v to_o a_o free_v ibid._n himself_o from_o necessity_n of_o recur_v to_o the_o private_a spirit_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o a._n c_n meaning_n who_o thus_o urge_v against_o he_o by_o name_n of_o the_o chaplain_n the_o chaplain_n therefore_o who_o as_o it_o seem_v will_v not_o admit_v tradition_n to_o be_v in_o any_o sort_n divine_a and_o infallible_a while_o it_o introduce_v the_o belief_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v divine_a book_n can_v sufficient_o defend_v the_o faith_n introduce_v of_o that_o point_n to_o be_v infallible_a unless_o he_o admit_v a_o infallible_a impulsion_n of_o the_o private_a spirit_n exit_fw-la parte_fw-la subjecti_fw-la without_o any_o infallible_a sufficient_o apply_v reason_n exit_fw-la parte_fw-la objecti_fw-la which_o he_o seem_v not_o nor_o have_v reason_n to_o do_v etc._n etc._n now_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o any_o indifferent_a man_n judgement_n whether_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n be_v not_o this_o viz._n that_o the_o chaplain_n or_o bishop_n seem_v indeed_o to_o reject_v the_o private_a spirit_n and_o have_v reason_n so_o to_o do_v yet_o since_o he_o admit_v not_o tradition_n to_o be_v in_o any_o sort_n divine_a and_o infallible_a he_o can_v sufficient_o defend_v the_o faith_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v infallible_a unless_o he_o admit_v a_o infallible_a impulsion_n of_o the_o private_a spirit_n but_o this_o part_n of_o a._n c.'s_n speech_n his_o lordship_n very_o prudent_o suppress_v to_o make_v way_n for_o a_o perversion_n of_o the_o other_o part_n which_o take_v both_o together_o signify_v no_o less_o than_o what_o i_o have_v say_v that_o the_o bishop_n profess_v to_o reject_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o private_a spirit_n yet_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n infallible_o without_o recourse_n to_o private_a revelation_n 4._o however_o the_o bishop_n be_v so_o far_o from_o avowed_o countenance_v this_o opinion_n that_o he_o choose_v rather_o to_o seem_v ignorant_a then_o free_o confess_v that_o any_o protestant_n do_v hold_v it_o for_o he_o grant_v no_o more_o then_o that_o either_o some_o do_v think_v there_o be_v no_o other_o sufficient_a warrant_n for_o this_o then_o 72._o special_a revelation_n or_o the_o private_a spirit_n or_o else_o that_o we_o impose_v it_o upon_o they_o and_o that_o if_o they_o do_v mean_a by_o faith_n objectum_fw-la fidei_fw-la the_o object_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v than_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o ordinary_a way_n here_o you_o see_v how_o doubtful_o the_o bishop_n speak_v either_o there_o be_v some_o such_o or_o you_o say_v he_o to_o we_o will_v have_v they_o think_v so_o and_o if_o they_o do_v mean_a etc._n etc._n as_o if_o there_o can_v be_v any_o doubt_n in_o either_o of_o these_o two_o particular_n see_v calvin_n that_o great_a doctor_n of_o protestancy_n be_v so_o positive_a therein_o and_o deliver_v that_o doctrine_n so_o express_o in_o his_o institution_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 7._o §_o 4._o 5._o where_o he_o clear_o resolve_v that_o to_o satisfy_v man_n conscience_n in_o this_o point_n viz._n in_o the_o belief_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o doubt_v we_o must_v recurre_v to_o the_o secret_n or_o if_o you_o will_v the_o private_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o §_o 5._o where_o he_o profess_v that_o holy_a scripture_n gain_v the_o credit_n or_o certainty_n which_o it_o have_v with_o we_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o to_o come_v yet_o close_o to_o the_o bishop_n dr._n whitaker_n a_o man_n that_o suck_v the_o church_n of_o england_n milk_n as_o well_o as_o his_o lordship_n write_v express_o thus_o 3._o esse_fw-la enim_fw-la dicimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o we_o affirm_v say_v he_o there_o be_v a_o more_o certain_a and_o clear_a testimony_n by_o which_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o these_o book_n be_v sacred_a to_o wit_n the_o internal_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o like_a he_o have_v cap._n 3_o ad_fw-la 3_o um_o in_o these_o word_n qui_fw-la enim_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la habent_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o they_o who_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o know_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n as_o one_o know_v his_o friend_n with_o who_o he_o have_v long_a and_o most_o familiar_o converse_v by_o his_o voice_n whence_o it_o evident_o appear_v that_o divers_a eminent_a protestant_n do_v in_o this_o point_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o rest_n resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o private_a spirit_n notwithstanding_o the_o bishop_n unwillingness_n to_o confess_v it_o to_o what_o else_o he_o insert_v in_o treat_v this_o point_n i_o say_v nothing_o because_o it_o be_v not_o against_o catholic_n doctrine_n i_o wonder_v not_o much_o to_o see_v natural_a reason_n introduce_v by_o the_o bishop_n tanquam_fw-la saulem_fw-la inter_fw-la prophetas_fw-la as_o a_o mean_n sufficient_a to_o ground_v a_o infallible_a 13_o belief_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o after_o a_o more_o narrow_a search_n i_o perceive_v he_o be_v enforce_v to_o take_v this_o four_o way_n viz._n natural_a reason_n which_o he_o elsewhere_o num_fw-la 2._o pag._n 60._o say_v must_v be_v admit_v though_o it_o be_v but_o for_o pagan_n and_o infidel_n who_o either_o as_o he_o affirm_v consider_v not_o or_o value_v not_o any_o one_o of_o the_o other_o three_o yet_o must_v some_o way_n or_o other_o be_v convert_v or_o leave_v without_o excuse_n rom._n 1._o now_o therefore_o let_v we_o see_v how_o his_o lordship_n go_v about_o either_o to_o convert_v a_o heathen_a or_o leave_v he_o without_o excuse_n in_o case_n he_o believe_v not_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o their_o protestant_a english_a canon_n by_o the_o light_n of_o natural_a reason_n and_o for_o great_a clearness_n of_o proceed_v let_v we_o imagine_v that_o some_o learned_a heathen_a who_o have_v read_v the_o bshops_n book_n come_v to_o his_o lordship_n to_o be_v satisfy_v in_o point_n of_o religion_n who_o discourse_n you_o have_v in_o this_o ensue_a dialogue_n 5._o heathen_a
as_o a_o precious_a jewel_n in_o a_o cabinet_n about_o with_o they_o and_o name_n cranmer_n only_o in_o the_o margin_n or_o shall_v any_o other_o author_n to_o discredit_v protestant_n affirm_v that_o some_o of_o they_o turn_v turk_n and_o be_v burn_v for_o such_o and_o cite_v only_o in_o the_o margin_n bernardinus_fw-la ochinus_n will_v not_o this_o be_v esteem_v a_o rhetorical_a hyperbole_n or_o rather_o a_o most_o unjust_a way_n of_o writing_n but_o what_o if_o this_o singular-plural_a say_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o word_n allege_v by_o the_o bishop_n signify_v will_v not_o this_o be_v a_o notable_a turn_v intelligitur_fw-la so_o be_v occham_n word_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o margin_n solum_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la quae_fw-la fuit_fw-la tempore_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la it_o viz._n the_o sentence_n of_o st._n augustin_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n be_v understand_v say_v he_o only_a of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n now_o in_o that_o whole_a place_n which_o i_o have_v peruse_v very_o diligent_o there_o be_v neither_o those_o cite_a word_n nor_o any_o thing_n like_o they_o what_o be_v there_o then_o marry_o the_o quite_o contrary_a for_o he_o say_v express_o that_o the_o church_n whereof_o st._n augustin_n speak_v in_o that_o sentence_n contain_v not_o only_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o of_o their_o time_n but_o also_o the_o church_n successive_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o that_o very_a time_n wherein_o st._n augustin_n write_v those_o word_n as_o occam_n himself_o show_v out_o of_o another_o text_n of_o st._n augustin_n and_o affirm_v that_o he_o understand_v the_o church_n in_o the_o very_a same_o sense_n in_o this_o sentence_n that_o he_o express_v in_o the_o other_o and_o so_o conclude_v that_o 4._o st._n augustins_n word_n there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n only_o quite_o contradictory_o to_o what_o his_o lordship_n make_v he_o speak_v be_v this_o fair_a deal_n think_v you_o to_o juggle_v in_o this_o manner_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o go_v about_o to_o persuade_v we_o it_o be_v not_o day_n though_o the_o sun_n shine_v that_o st._n augustins_n meaning_n jump_v right_a with_o occham_n interpretation_n it_o be_v evident_a for_o he_o must_v speak_v here_o of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n and_o not_o of_o the_o primitive_a or_o apostolical_a church_n only_o because_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o church_n which_o say_v to_o he_o noli_fw-la credere_fw-la manichaeo_n do_v not_o believe_v manichaeus_n which_o if_o he_o have_v affirm_v of_o the_o primitive_a or_o apostolical_a church_n have_v neither_o be_v true_a nor_o to_o the_o purpose_n the_o primitive_a and_o apostolical_a church_n have_v say_v no_o more_o against_o manichaeus_n than_o the_o scripture_n itself_o say_v moreover_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o church_n wherein_o as_o he_o teach_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o st._n peter_n to_o the_o present_a time_n have_v keep_v he_o etc._n etc._n but_o that_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o present_a church_n succeed_v the_o primitive_a and_o not_o the_o primitive_a only_o nay_o further_o he_o say_v that_o if_o any_o evident_a place_n can_v be_v allege_v out_o of_o the_o gospel_n in_o confirmation_n of_o manichaeus_n his_o doctrine_n he_o will_v neither_o believe_v the_o church_n nor_o the_o gospel_n because_o both_o of_o they_o shall_v in_o that_o case_n have_v deceive_v he_o which_o must_v necessary_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o present_a church_n because_o the_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v not_o deceive_v he_o in_o forbid_v he_o to_o follow_v manichaeus_n now_o though_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o deliver_v the_o scripture_n unto_o we_o yet_o be_v it_o not_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o her_o infallibility_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o cite_a place_n of_o saint_n augustin_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o it_o be_v clear_a and_o manifest_a out_o of_o the_o text_n itself_o his_o lordship_n objection_n that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n 21._o must_v be_v as_o infallible_a as_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a i_o distinguish_v if_o he_o mean_v the_o one_o must_v be_v as_o true_o and_o real_o infallible_a quoad_fw-la substantiam_fw-la as_o the_o other_o i_o grant_v it_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v the_o one_o must_v be_v as_o high_o and_o as_o perfect_o infallible_a as_o the_o other_o quoad_fw-la modum_fw-la i_o deny_v it_o for_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n need_v not_o be_v suppose_v simple_o divine_a to_o give_v a_o infallible_a 4._o testimony_n of_o this_o tradition_n as_o we_o have_v show_v because_o we_o need_v not_o assert_v it_o to_o be_v any_o more_o than_o a_o authentical_a testimony_n preserve_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o error_n those_o two_o end_n alone_o mention_v by_o the_o relatour_n fall_v short_a of_o ibidem_fw-la the_o end_n of_o tradition_n which_o not_o only_o induce_v infidel_n and_o instruct_v novice_n and_o weakling_n but_o find_v and_o establish_v believer_n even_o the_o great_a doctor_n in_o the_o church_n st._n augustin_n be_v neither_o infidel_n novice_n weakling_n nor_o doubter_n in_o the_o faith_n but_o the_o very_o learn_a of_o bishop_n and_o doctor_n yet_o it_o serve_v he_o so_o much_o that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v believe_v no_o nor_o can_v believe_v scripture_n without_o it_o as_o he_o himself_o testify_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v contr_n epist._n fundament_n cap._n 5._o as_o concern_v jacobus_n almaynus_fw-la his_o opinion_n cite_v by_o the_o relatour_n ibidem_fw-la viz._n that_o we_o be_v first_o and_o more_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o church_n than_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v not_o altogether_o true_a for_o though_o we_o be_v first_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o church_n non_fw-fr prioritate_fw-la temporis_fw-la sed_fw-la naturae_fw-la to_o use_v philosophical_a term_n because_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o be_v infallible_o assure_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v ordain_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o end_n and_o more_o noble_a object_n it_o can_v be_v proper_o say_v that_o we_o be_v more_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o church_n than_o the_o scripture_n touch_v his_o and_o gerson_n read_v the_o forecited_n place_n of_o st._n augustin_n ego_fw-la vero_fw-la evangelio_n non_fw-la crederem_fw-la nisi_fw-la i_o catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la commoveret_fw-la authoritas_fw-la where_o for_o commoveret_fw-la they_o read_v compelleret_fw-la concern_v this_o i_o say_v i_o have_v rather_o charitable_o think_v they_o have_v find_v it_o so_o in_o some_o copy_n then_o judge_v with_o his_o lordship_n that_o they_o do_v most_o notorious_o falsify_v the_o text._n and_o i_o be_o persuade_v he_o have_v the_o like_a charitable_a opinion_n for_o mr._n perkins_n who_o put_v credidissem_fw-la for_o crederem_fw-la and_o 1._o movisset_fw-la for_o commoveret_fw-la neither_o be_v this_o apology_n of_o i_o for_o almaynus_fw-la and_o gerson_n without_o ground_n for_o both_o occam_n and_o biel_n quote_v by_o his_o lordship_n serve_v themselves_o of_o the_o very_a same_o word_n compelleret_fw-la so_o that_o it_o seem_v the_o schoolman_n of_o those_o day_n cite_v st._n augustin_n in_o this_o manner_n and_o though_o for_o my_o part_n i_o prefer_v commoveret_fw-la before_o compelleret_fw-la yet_o in_o st._n augustins_n persuasion_n express_v in_o that_o place_n it_o signify_v as_o much_o as_o compelleret_fw-la for_o he_o confess_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o move_v he_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n but_o command_v he_o and_o so_o strong_o that_o it_o necessitate_v he_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o divine_a word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o compelleret_fw-la to_o the_o author_n cite_v in_o his_o margin_n i_o answer_v canus_n libr._n 2._o de_fw-la ibidem_fw-la locis_fw-la cap._n 8._o treat_n as_o st._n augustin_n do_v how_o one_o come_v to_o believe_v who_o have_v no_o belief_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o resolve_n that_o this_o must_v be_v do_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o such_o as_o reject_v the_o church_n authority_n can_v never_o believe_v the_o scripture_n hence_o he_o consequent_o assert_v sive_fw-la infideles_fw-la sive_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la novicii_n etc._n etc._n that_o infidel_n and_o novice_n in_o the_o faith_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o belief_n of_o scripture_n by_o this_o mean_n but_o here_o be_v the_o turn_n he_o cite_v sive_fw-la infideles_fw-la sive_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la novicii_n lame_o without_o a_o verb_n or_o any_o full_a sense_n think_v thereby_o to_o persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o the_o church_n induce_v only_o such_o to_o read_v scripture_n by_o a_o fallible_a authority_n and_o that_o all_o their_o infallible_a faith_n of_o scripture_n stream_n
scripture_n moral_o speak_v more_o obnoxious_a to_o alteration_n then_o universal_a tradition_n 3._o he_o mistake_v his_o adversary_n word_n contradict_v his_o brethren_n and_o himself_o falsify_v a._n c._n and_o most_o unhandsome_o traduce_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n 4._o text_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n maintain_v 5._o why_o each_o apostle_n infallible_a and_o not_o each_o bishop_n 6._o christ_n promise_n to_o his_o apostle_n when_o to_o be_v extend_v to_o their_o successor_n 7._o not_o the_o apostle_n only_o but_o their_o successor_n also_o settle_v in_o all_o truth_n 8._o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n and_o her_o motive_n of_o credibility_n not_o unfit_o compare_v to_o a_o king_n word_n his_o ambassador_n and_o his_o credential_n 9_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n and_o henricus_n a_o gandavo_n misconstrue_v and_o the_o father_n misalledge_v 1._o the_o bishop_n num_fw-la 26._o of_o this_o paragraph_n to_o withdraw_v his_o reader_n 26._o from_o the_o thesis_n or_o main_a matter_n in_o question_n viz._n the_o church_n descend_v very_o dextrous_o indeed_o but_o yet_o without_o any_o necessity_n to_o the_o hypothesis_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o though_o a._n c._n believe_v that_o the_o roman_a in_o a_o true_a sense_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n yet_o here_o he_o abstract_n from_o that_o question_n and_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o he_o plain_o assert_n viz._n that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a etc._n etc._n but_o whether_o they_o or_o we_o or_o some_o other_o congregation_n of_o christian_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v another_o question_n of_o which_o a._n c._n affirm_v nothing_o in_o this_o place_n yet_o the_o relatour_n as_o if_o he_o be_v somewhat_o nettle_v be_v please_v to_o say_v that_o after_o a_o long_a ibidem_fw-la silence_n he_o thrust_v himself_o in_o again_o and_o desire_v the_o bishop_n to_o consider_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o a_o company_n of_o fallible_a man_n but_o as_o a_o tradition_n of_o a_o company_n of_o man_n assist_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a spirit_n in_o which_o sense_n he_o may_v easy_o find_v it_o to_o be_v infallible_a true_o in_o my_o opinion_n a._n c._n deserve_v no_o rough_a language_n for_o his_o respect_n to_o the_o bishop_n in_o be_v so_o long_o and_o silent_o attentive_a to_o his_o discourse_n though_o at_o length_n through_o zeal_n he_o become_v something_o earnest_a in_o the_o business_n out_o of_o a_o desire_n to_o bring_v his_o adversary_n into_o the_o right_a way_n and_o to_o this_o end_n urge_v he_o to_o consider_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o a_o company_n of_o fallible_a man_n but_o as_o a_o tradition_n of_o a_o company_n of_o man_n assist_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o not_o assist_v by_o they_o in_o any_o common_a way_n but_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o reach_v to_o infallibility_n for_o such_o assistance_n be_v necessary_a as_o well_o to_o have_v sufficient_a assurance_n of_o the_o true_a canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o to_o come_v to_o the_o true_a meaning_n and_o interpretation_n thereof_o such_o assistance_n the_o relatour_n confess_v the_o prophet_n to_o have_v have_v under_o ibidem_fw-la the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o apostle_n under_o the_o new_a the_o like_a we_o say_v the_o high_a priest_n with_o his_o clergy_n have_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o 17._o of_o deuteronomy_n verse_n 8._o etc._n etc._n where_o in_o doubt_n the_o people_n be_v bind_v not_o only_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o his_o clergy_n but_o to_o submit_v and_o stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n much_o more_o than_o ought_v we_o to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o obligation_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o can_v not_o stand_v without_o infallibility_n witness_v the_o infinite_a dissension_n and_o division_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n among_o all_o the_o different_a sect_n of_o christian_n that_o deny_v it_o neither_o have_v he_o any_o reason_n to_o break_v forth_o into_o those_o exclamation_n good_a god_n ibidem_fw-la whither_o will_v these_o man_n go_v for_o they_o go_v no_o further_o than_o christ_n himself_o lead_v they_o by_o promise_n make_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o shall_v be_v set_v down_o 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n may_v very_o well_o acknowledge_v this_o infallibility_n yet_o make_v it_o no_o occasion_n to_o lord_n it_o over_o other_o unless_o he_o will_v also_o accuse_v the_o apostle_n upon_o the_o same_o account_n neither_o do_v they_o equal_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n as_o the_o relatour_n urge_v to_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o this_o have_v be_v show_v before_o touch_v what_o he_o write_v of_o divine_a infallibility_n we_o have_v already_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o our_o present_a purpose_n to_o assert_v church-tradition_n to_o be_v infallible_a whether_o it_o be_v simple_o divine_a or_o no_o be_v another_o question_n to_o be_v determine_v when_o time_n and_o place_n require_v whence_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o equalize_a church-tradition_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o we_o have_v already_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o all_o respect_v equal_a to_o scripture_n again_o he_o fall_v from_o the_o thesis_n to_o the_o hypothesis_n we_o have_v nothing_o now_o to_o do_v with_o this_o question_n whether_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o his_o clergy_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o no_o but_o whether_o that_o which_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v able_a to_o breed_v in_o we_o divine_a faith_n or_o no_o whatsoever_o congregation_n of_o christian_n it_o be_v so_o that_o his_o impeach_v the_o roman_a church_n of_o error_n here_o whilst_o we_o be_v in_o dispute_n about_o another_o question_n be_v whole_o out_o of_o season_n his_o answer_n to_o st._n basils_n text_n 17._o parem_fw-la vim_o habent_fw-la ad_fw-la pietatem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la that_o unwritten_a tradition_n have_v equal_a force_n to_o stir_v up_o piety_n with_o the_o write_a word_n be_v very_o deficient_a first_o it_o be_v true_a he_o speak_v of_o apostolical_a tradition_n yet_o of_o such_o as_o be_v come_v down_o from_o their_o time_n to_o st._n basils_n for_o otherwise_o how_o shall_v they_o have_v have_v in_o his_o time_n any_o force_n at_o all_o to_o move_v to_o piety_n as_o he_o say_v they_o then_o have_v parem_fw-la vim_o habent_fw-la ad_fw-la pietatem_fw-la second_o his_o exception_n take_v against_o that_o work_n of_o st._n basil_n from_o bishop_n andrews_n and_o that_o borrow_a from_o erasmus_n and_o he_o collect_v it_o only_o from_o the_o stile_n which_o yet_o other_o far_a more_o ancient_a and_o better_o acquaint_v with_o st._n basils_n stile_n than_o erasmus_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v his_o this_o exception_n i_o say_v we_o esteem_v of_o no_o great_a force_n three_o st._n basils_n make_v the_o unwritten_a tradition_n whereof_o he_o speak_v to_o be_v such_o as_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n prove_v not_o scripture_n itself_o so_o to_o be_v the_o touchstone_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n as_o that_o scripture_n must_v therefore_o needs_o be_v of_o great_a force_n and_o superior_a dignity_n then_o that_o of_o tradition_n for_o the_o bishop_n himself_o grant_v prime_a apostolical_a tradition_n to_o be_v equal_o divine_a with_o scripture_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v true_a to_o say_v that_o those_o prime_a tradition_n be_v such_o as_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o stapletons_n word_n be_v quite_o pervert_v by_o the_o bishop_n for_o he_o speak_v as_o his_o word_n clear_o intimate_v of_o late_a and_o fresh_a tradition_n then_o be_v the_o prime_n apostolical_a viz._n such_o as_o be_v begin_v by_o general_a council_n or_o perhaps_o in_o some_o particular_a church_n his_o word_n be_v recentiorem_fw-la &_o posteriorem_fw-la sicut_fw-la &_o particularem_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o do_v not_o signify_v such_o tradition_n as_o we_o now_o treat_v of_o viz._n tradition_n primely_a apostolical_a deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n in_o all_o succeed_a age_n by_o the_o universal_a and_o constant_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o convey_v as_o such_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n 2._o a._n c._n urge_v the_o present_a copy_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n press_v the_o relatour_n very_o hard_o as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v now_o i_o add_v what_o if_o the_o ancient_a copy_n disagree_v how_o shall_v we_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n his_o say_n that_o true_a scripture_n may_v be_v more_o easy_o 27._o know_v then_o true_a tradition_n because_o the_o one_o be_v write_v and_o not_o the_o other_o be_v not_o consequent_a
in_o this_o point_n upon_o this_o particular_a text_n or_o no_o be_v little_a material_a it_o be_v sufficient_a they_o acknowledge_v the_o thing_n we_o contend_v for_o viz._n the_o prerogative_n of_o infallibility_n and_o immunity_n from_o error_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o general_o derive_v it_o from_o our_o saviour_n special_a promise_n unto_o the_o church_n and_o his_o presence_n with_o it_o which_o presence_n and_o promise_v this_o text_n with_o other_o of_o like_a nature_n do_v clear_o contain_v as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o acknowledge_v wherefore_o with_o far_o great_a reason_n we_o return_v the_o challenge_n upon_o himself_o and_o press_v the_o relatours_n party_n to_o produce_v any_o one_o father_n that_o ever_o deny_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o place_n to_o reach_v to_o infallible_a assistance_n grant_v thereby_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n successor_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o we_o maintain_v it_o the_o like_a answer_n of_o our_o satisfy_v his_o exposition_n of_o the_o three_o place_n john_n 14._o 16._o for_o what_o be_v promise_v there_o for_o ever_o must_v in_o some_o absolute_a sense_n so_o far_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n from_o error_n be_v verify_v in_o future_a age_n he_o frame_v also_o a_o answer_n to_o a_o four_o place_n viz._n john_n 16._o 13._o which_o speak_v of_o lead_v the_o apostle_n into_o all_o truth_n this_o he_o restrain_v to_o the_o person_n of_o the_o apostle_n only_o and_o he_o need_v not_o tell_v we_o so_o often_o of_o simple_o all_o for_o sure_o none_o be_v so_o simple_a as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o without_o his_o tell_n it_o but_o we_o contend_v that_o in_o whatsoever_o sense_n all_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o respect_n of_o each_o apostle_n apart_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o relation_n to_o their_o successor_n assemble_v in_o a_o full_a representative_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n 5._o now_o one_o main_a reason_n of_o this_o difference_n between_o the_o apostle_n and_o succeed_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n i_o take_v to_o be_v this_o that_o every_o apostle_n apart_o have_v receive_v a_o immediate_a power_n from_o our_o saviour_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n so_o that_o whatever_o any_o one_o of_o they_o teach_v as_o christian_a faith_n all_o the_o church_n be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v and_o consequent_o have_v he_o err_v in_o any_o thing_n the_o whole_a church_n will_v have_v be_v oblige_v to_o follow_v and_o believe_v that_o error_n whereas_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o succeed_a bishop_n general_o speak_v be_v not_o to_o be_v pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o each_o of_o his_o own_o respective_a diocese_n so_o that_o if_o particular_a pastor_n preach_v any_o error_n in_o faith_n the_o whole_a church_n be_v unconcern_v in_o it_o have_v no_o obligation_n to_o believe_v they_o but_o in_o regard_n those_o respective_a pastor_n when_o they_o be_v assemble_v in_o a_o lawful_a representative_a or_o general_a council_n be_v in_o quality_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n if_o they_o shall_v err_v in_o such_o a_o body_n the_o whole_a church_n will_v be_v oblige_v to_o err_v with_o they_o which_o be_v against_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n hence_o also_o it_o follow_v in_o proportion_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n when_o he_o teach_v any_o thing_n in_o that_o quality_n viz._n as_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o intend_v to_o oblige_v the_o whole_a church_n by_o his_o definition_n can_v in_o the_o common_a opinion_n err_v for_o the_o same_o reason_n 6._o to_o give_v also_o the_o fundamental_a reason_n for_o this_o exposition_n one_o and_o that_o a_o certain_a way_n to_o know_v when_o our_o saviour_n word_n speak_v immediate_o to_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o be_v extend_v to_o their_o successor_n in_o all_o age_n be_v this_o that_o when_o the_o necessary_a good_a and_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n require_v the_o performance_n of_o christ_n word_n in_o future_a age_n no_o less_o than_o it_o require_v it_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n than_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v that_o his_o word_n extend_v themselves_o to_o those_o age_n unless_o there_o be_v some_o express_a limitation_n add_v to_o his_o word_n tie_v they_o to_o the_o apostle_n only_o thus_o when_o our_o saviour_n command_v his_o apostle_n to_o preach_v baptise_v remit_v sin_n feed_v their_o flock_n etc._n etc._n see_v these_o action_n be_v as_o necessary_a for_o all_o future_a age_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n it_o be_v manifest_a they_o be_v to_o reach_v to_o all_o succeedinga_fw-mi ge_n again_o in_o regard_n he_o also_o promise_v john_n 16._o 13._o to_o lead_v the_o apostle_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n into_o all_o truth_n and_o see_v it_o be_v as_o necessary_a now_o for_o those_o who_o act_n as_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o all_o succeed_a bishop_n do_v when_o they_o meet_v in_o a_o lawful_a ecumenical_a council_n to_o be_v lead_v into_o all_o those_o truth_n into_o which_o he_o promise_v to_o lead_v the_o apostle_n for_o the_o reason_n but_o now_o allege_v it_o evident_o follow_v by_o virtue_n of_o our_o saviour_n promise_n that_o they_o be_v always_o and_o effectual_o so_o lead_v and_o though_o it_o will_v be_v boldness_n as_o the_o relatour_n term_v it_o to_o enlarge_v that_o promise_n in_o the_o fullness_n of_o it_o beyond_o the_o person_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o far_o as_o to_o give_v to_o every_o single_a succeed_a bishop_n as_o infallible_a a_o lead_n into_o all_o truth_n as_o each_o of_o the_o apostle_n have_v yet_o may_v it_o without_o any_o boldness_n at_o all_o be_v affirm_v that_o the_o succeed_a bishop_n assemble_v as_o abovesaid_a have_v a_o infallible_a lead_n into_o all_o truth_n as_o be_v then_o representative_a pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v she_o what_o she_o be_v to_o believe_v st._n augustine_n etc._n word_n therefore_o which_o the_o bishop_n cite_v call_v they_o in_o a_o manner_n prophetical_a be_v not_o with_o the_o least_o shadow_n of_o reason_n applyable_a to_o we_o but_o to_o a_o world_n of_o fanatic_n spring_v from_o the_o stock_n of_o protestancy_n and_o who_o still_o pass_v under_o the_o general_a notion_n of_o protestant_n and_o this_o i_o may_v bold_o assert_v in_o regard_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o say_v great_a saint_n and_o doctor_n hold_v the_o selfsame_a doctrine_n we_o here_o maintain_v while_o for_o instance_n he_o account_v our_o obligation_n to_o communicate_v fast_v to_o have_v proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o which_o will_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o be_v not_o ascertain_v by_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o church_n alone_o jannar_n it_o be_v manifest_a say_v he_o that_o when_o the_o disciple_n first_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n they_o do_v not_o receive_v fast_v must_v we_o therefore_o calumniate_v the_o universal_a church_n for_o always_o receive_v fast_v since_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v please_v herewith_o that_o in_o honour_n of_o so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o a_o christian_n mouth_n before_o any_o other_o meat_n for_o this_o cause_n this_o custom_n be_v observe_v throughout_o the_o world_n i_o may_v easy_o produce_v several_a other_o instance_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n if_o this_o one_o be_v not_o sufficient_a as_o i_o presume_v it_o be_v 7._o neither_o have_v the_o bishop_n any_o ground_n to_o aver_v that_o this_o promise_n of_o settle_v the_o apostle_n in_o all_o truth_n be_v for_o the_o person_n of_o the_o apostle_n only_o because_o the_o truth_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v settle_v be_v to_o continue_v inviolable_o in_o the_o church_n what_o wise_a man_n will_v go_v about_o to_o raise_v a_o stately_a building_n to_o continue_v for_o many_o age_n and_o satisfy_v himself_o with_o lay_v a_o foundation_n to_o last_v but_o for_o few_o year_n our_o saviour_n the_o wise_a of_o architect_n be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v to_o have_v found_v this_o incomparable_a building_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o sand_n which_o must_v infallible_o have_v happen_v have_v he_o not_o intend_v to_o afford_v his_o continual_a assistance_n also_o to_o the_o succeed_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o lead_v they_o when_o assemble_v in_o a_o general_n council_n into_o all_o those_o truth_n wherein_o he_o first_o settle_v the_o apostle_n as_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n above_o attest_n etc._n the_o church_n never_o change_v nor_o diminish_v nor_o add_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o nihil_fw-la unquam_fw-la no_o she_o change_v nothing_o she_o neither_o cut_v off_o any_o thing_n necessary_a nor_o adjoin_v any_o thing_n superfluous_a she_o lose_v not_o what_o be_v she_o own_o she_o usurp_v not_o what_o belong_v to_o another_o etc._n etc._n but_o only_o
scripture_n be_v god_n word_n from_o the_o sole_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o when_o both_o partle_v press_v this_o circle_n against_o each_o other_o they_o always_o suppose_v that_o scripture_n be_v infallible_o and_o divine_o believe_v for_o god_n word_n in_o some_o true_a sense_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o church_n testimony_n otherwise_o it_o be_v as_o impertinent_a to_o press_v this_o question_n to_o a_o christian_a why_o believe_v you_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o have_v no_o further_a certainty_n of_o it_o than_o what_o be_v draw_v from_o a_o probable_a and_o humane_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n as_o if_o it_o be_v propound_v to_o a_o heathen_a who_o have_v only_o hear_v scripture_n recommend_v for_o god_n word_n by_o person_n very_o worthy_a of_o credit_n for_o both_o of_o these_o be_v equal_o to_o answer_v that_o they_o deny_v the_o supposition_n of_o a_o infallible_a belief_n since_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v as_o christian_n take_v the_o word_n belief_n that_o it_o be_v god_n word_n and_o then_o no_o marvel_n if_o there_o be_v no_o circle_n commit_v when_o there_o be_v no_o christian_a belief_n which_o both_o side_n presuppose_v as_o a_o ground_n of_o this_o circle_n where_o ever_o it_o be_v find_v when_o therefore_o the_o relatour_n speak_v of_o prove_v scripture_n by_o the_o church_n unless_o he_o mean_v prove_v it_o by_o a_o medium_fw-la sufficient_a to_o assure_v we_o infallible_o that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o he_o constant_o refuse_v to_o grant_v though_o he_o fall_v not_o into_o a_o circle_n yet_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o semicircle_n that_o be_v a_o crooked_a turn_v in_o his_o labyrinth_n by_o mis-stating_a the_o question_n and_o bow_v it_o another_o way_n than_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o always_o be_v propound_v in_o this_o controversy_n as_o i_o say_v above_o wherefore_o if_o the_o church_n give_v only_o a_o humane_a testimony_n to_o induce_v 〈◊〉_d a_o fallible_a assent_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o scripture_n afterward_o by_o its_o own_o light_n give_v i_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v true_a there_o can_v never_o have_v be_v the_o least_o ground_n for_o wise_a and_o learned_a man_n to_o move_v this_o difficulty_n of_o a_o vicious_a circle_n one_o against_o another_o no_o more_o than_o when_o i_o believe_v it_o probable_a that_o to_o morrow_n will_v be_v a_o fair_a day_n because_o peter_n tell_v i_o so_o and_o after_o i_o know_v certain_o that_o peter_n tell_v i_o true_a because_o i_o see_v the_o next_o day_n to_o be_v fair_a by_o its_o own_o light_n his_o lordship_n therefore_o be_v either_o to_o suppose_v that_o those_o beginner_n and_o weakling_n he_o speak_v of_o have_v some_o degree_n of_o divine_a faith_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n antecedent_o to_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n or_o he_o commit_v the_o fallacy_n term_v ex_fw-la falso_fw-la supposito_fw-la of_o make_v a_o false_a supposition_n and_o so_o by_o avoid_v one_o error_n fall_v into_o another_o for_o unless_o he_o believe_v infallible_o that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o true_a cause_n and_o motive_n of_o his_o infallible_a belief_n he_o do_v not_o answer_v the_o question_n see_v all_o that_o affirm_v they_o believe_v this_o for_o the_o church_n testimony_n understand_v it_o so_o and_o if_o he_o do_v he_o forsake_v his_o own_o principle_n fall_v to_o we_o and_o consequent_o into_o that_o pretend_a circle_n he_o object_n against_o we_o if_o his_o objection_n be_v of_o force_n his_o lordship_n resolution_n of_o faith_n into_o prime_a apostolical_a tradition_n we_o have_v 2._o above_o evince_v to_o be_v impossible_a suppose_v the_o immediate_a or_o present_a church-tradition_n to_o be_v fallible_a but_o be_v it_o possible_a we_o have_v also_o evidence_v that_o it_o destroy_v his_o own_o ground_n viz._n of_o sole_a scriptures-being_a the_o foundation_n of_o our_o belief_n when_o therefore_o he_o aver_v that_o we_o may_v resolve_v our_o faith_n into_o prime_a tradition_n when_o it_o be_v 33._o know_v to_o be_v such_o if_o he_o mean_v by_o know_a as_o he_o must_v such_o a_o knowledge_n as_o may_v suffice_v to_o make_v that_o prime_a tradition_n a_o object_n of_o faith_n he_o wheel_v quite_o about_o to_o amuse_v his_o reader_n and_o say_v in_o effect_n we_o may_v then_o resolve_v our_o faith_n into_o tradition_n when_o that_o come_v to_o pass_v which_o himself_o hold_v impossible_a ever_o to_o happen_v for_o if_o prime_a tradition_n can_v be_v only_o gather_v by_o the_o perpetual_a succeed_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v certain_a it_o can_v only_o be_v and_o that_o tradition_n be_v fallible_a as_o the_o bishop_n perpetual_o contend_v how_o shall_v any_o prime_a tradition_n be_v know_v sufficient_o to_o make_v itself_o a_o object_n of_o faith_n since_o nothing_o can_v do_v that_o but_o a_o authority_n infallible_a 〈◊〉_d we_o infallible_o certain_a of_o that_o tradition_n hence_o he_o run_v two_o contrary_a way_n at_o once_o desirous_a on_o the_o one_o side_n to_o resolve_v faith_n into_o prime_a tradition_n that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v repugnant_a to_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o so_o willing_a to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o we_o that_o by_o his_o ground_n he_o make_v that_o resolution_n whole_o impossible_a and_o to_o blind_v these_o contrariety_n pretend_v that_o church-tradition_n be_v not_o simple_o divine_a can_v be_v such_o as_o may_v suffice_v for_o a_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n whereinto_o it_o be_v to_o be_v resolve_v when_o yet_o he_o know_v full_a well_o the_o difficulty_n lie_v not_o there_o and_o that_o his_o adversary_n never_o affirm_v it_o be_v simple_o divine_a or_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n but_o speak_v always_o wary_o and_o reserve_o abstracting_a from_o that_o question_n as_o not_o necessary_a for_o the_o solving_a of_o his_o argument_n or_o defence_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n against_o he_o let_v the_o bishop_n adherent_n but_o confess_v that_o the_o testimony_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v true_o infallible_a and_o we_o for_o the_o present_n shall_v require_v no_o more_o of_o they_o for_o that_o infallibility_n suppose_v we_o have_v make_v it_o manifest_v that_o prime_a tradition_n be_v sufficient_o derive_v to_o we_o in_o quality_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n whereon_o to_o rest_v which_o in_o his_o lordship_n principle_n be_v impossible_a to_o be_v do_v 4._o concern_v the_o relator_n endeavour_v to_o reconcile_v the_o father_n who_o he_o conceive_v to_o speak_v sometime_o contrary_a to_o one_o another_o touch_v scripture_n and_o tradition_n though_o he_o do_v not_o much_o oblige_v we_o in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o he_o bring_v in_o favour_n of_o our_o assertion_n for_o he_o name_v only_o two_o and_o one_o of_o they_o somewhat_o lame_o cite_v with_o a_o &c._n &c._n yet_o sure_o we_o be_v to_o thank_v he_o for_o his_o fair_a and_o candid_a exposition_n of_o those_o he_o quote_v against_o we_o for_o he_o profess_v that_o when_o ever_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o rely_v upon_o scripture_n only_o they_o be_v never_o to_o be_v understand_v with_o exclusion_n of_o tradition_n wherein_o doubtless_o his_o lordship_n deliver_v a_o great_a truth_n and_o nothing_o contrary_a to_o we_o but_o as_o for_o his_o challenge_n which_o follow_v we_o can_v but_o say_v that_o be_v loud_a indeed_o but_o the_o sound_n betray_v its_o emptiness_n he_o will_v oblige_v we_o to_o show_v that_o the_o holy_a father_n maintain_v that_o which_o we_o need_v not_o affirm_v to_o be_v hold_v by_o they_o for_o we_o never_o yet_o say_v that_o our_o faith_n of_o the_o scriptures-being_a god_n word_n be_v resolve_v into_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n but_o into_o prime_a apostolical_a tradition_n of_o which_o we_o be_v infallible_o certify_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n it_o be_v a_o condition_n or_o application_n of_o prime_a tradition_n to_o we_o and_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o defend_v our_o tenet_n we_o have_v both_o go_v along_o with_o a._n c._n and_o those_o divine_n who_o affirm_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v so_o simple_o and_o absolute_o divine_a as_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o give_v a_o full_a solution_n to_o all_o the_o relatour_n argument_n the_o most_o of_o which_o suppose_v we_o upon_o a_o false_a ground_n necessitate_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v so_o absolute_o and_o simple_o divine_a that_o our_o faith_n be_v to_o rest_v upon_o it_o as_o its_o ultimate_a motive_n and_o formal_a object_n which_o must_v be_v no_o less_o than_o absolute_a divine_a authority_n but_o suppose_v we_o hold_v our_o faith_n to_o be_v
st._n chrysostome_n in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v it_o import_v not_o evident_a or_o scientifical_a knowledge_n proper_o so_o call_v but_o a_o firm_a and_o perfect_a assurance_n only_o otherwise_o our_o faith_n will_v neither_o be_v free_a nor_o meritorious_a his_o distinction_n therefore_o betwixt_o hear_v and_o know_v be_v but_o a_o slender_a one_o both_o because_o the_o royal_a prophet_n intimate_v that_o the_o succeed_a age_n know_v the_o prodigious_a work_n of_o god_n by_o hear_v they_o from_o their_o immediate_a ancestor_n psalm_n 77._o 6._o and_o because_o they_o that_o hear_v moses_n the_o prophet_n our_o saviour_n and_o the_o apostle_n speak_v know_v as_o perfect_o by_o that_o hear_n as_o can_v be_v know_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o likewise_o because_o st._n paul_n say_v rom._n 10._o 17._o fides_n ex_fw-la auditu_fw-la faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o last_o because_o his_o lordship_n himself_o assert_n that_o scripture_n be_v know_v in_o this_o sense_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o hear_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n now_o to_o aver_v that_o they_o resolve_v their_o faith_n high_o and_o into_o a_o more_o inward_a principle_n than_o a_o ear_n to_o their_o immediate_a ancestor_n and_o their_o tradition_n be_v a_o truth_n deliver_v by_o i_o all_o along_o this_o debate_n for_o i_o have_v always_o hold_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o present_a church_n to_o be_v only_o a_o infallible_a application_n to_o we_o of_o the_o prime_n divine_a tradition_n concern_v scripture_n for_o which_o prime_a tradition_n only_o we_o believe_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o for_o the_o formal_a motive_n of_o our_o belief_n to_z his_o quere_z therefore_o touch_v the_o jew_n proceed_v in_o the_o like_a controversy_n i_o answer_v when_o it_o shall_v be_v show_v that_o any_o of_o the_o jew_n hold_v the_o old_a testament_n for_o their_o sole_a rule_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o tradition_n i_o shall_v then_o be_v ready_a to_o show_v what_o the_o bishop_n here_o demand_v viz_o that_o in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n one_o jew_n put_v another_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v god_n word_n but_o to_o return_v to_o their_o resolution_n of_o faith_n certain_a it_o be_v they_o have_v always_o at_o least_o very_a often_o prophet_n among_o they_o insomuch_o that_o calvin_n himself_o confess_v that_o god_n promise_v to_o provide_v there_o shall_v 5._o never_o be_v want_v a_o prophet_n in_o israel_n moreover_o beside_o these_o it_o be_v well_o know_v there_o be_v in_o the_o jewish_a church_n a_o permanent_a infallible_a authority_n consist_v of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o his_o clergy_n to_o which_o all_o be_v bind_v to_o have_v 〈◊〉_d in_o doubt_n and_o difficulty_n of_o religigion_n etc._n as_o be_v express_v in_o holy_a writ_n wherefore_o we_o have_v not_o the_o least_o reason_n to_o doubt_n but_o the_o jew_n will_v have_v proceed_v the_o same_o way_n in_o all_o difficulty_n concern_v scripture_n and_o tradition_n that_o we_o do_v though_o his_o lordship_n will_v persuade_v we_o the_o contrary_a 12._o mr._n fisher_n be_v here_o bring_v in_o as_o he_o be_v once_o before_o for_o aver_v 1._o that_o no_o other_o answer_n can_v be_v make_v of_o the_o scriptures-being_a god_n word_n but_o by_o admit_v some_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a to_o assure_v we_o of_o this_o point_n to_o which_o the_o relatour_n reply_v that_o the_o argument_n will_v have_v be_v strong_a have_v he_o say_v to_o assure_v we_o of_o this_o point_n by_o divine_a faith_n but_o certain_o mr._n fisher_n mean_v such_o a_o assurance_n and_o no_o other_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o expression_n he_o use_v viz._n to_o assure_v we_o in_o this_o point_n what_o point_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n he_o can_v not_o be_v think_v in_o reason_n but_o to_o require_v a_o assurance_n proportionable_a to_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v infallible_a assurance_n sufficient_a to_o breed_v in_o we_o divine_a faith_n though_o it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o no_o certain_a assurance_n at_o all_o touch_v this_o matter_n can_v be_v have_v without_o admit_v the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o it_o have_v be_v urge_v heretofore_o many_o book_n of_o holy_a writ_n have_v be_v doubt_v of_o upon_o very_o good_a ground_n and_o the_o rest_n question_v as_o corrupt_v so_o that_o without_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v impossible_a in_o this_o case_n to_o come_v to_o any_o certain_a determination_n at_o all_o much_o less_o can_v we_o arrive_v to_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n sure_o i_o be_o the_o school_n do_v not_o maintain_v with_o his_o lordship_n here_o that_o moral_a certainty_n be_v infallible_a philosopher_n be_v so_o far_o from_o this_o as_o to_o admit_v that_o even_o physical_a certainty_n fall_v short_a of_o infallibility_n as_o be_v liable_a to_o deception_n as_o for_o example_n when_o i_o have_v my_o eye_n open_a and_o look_v upon_o the_o wall_n i_o have_v physical_a certainty_n that_o it_o be_v the_o wall_n which_o i_o see_v but_o i_o have_v no_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o it_o for_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n it_o may_v be_v otherwise_o now_o the_o reason_n why_o a_o moral_a and_o humane_a authority_n so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v fallible_a can_v never_o produce_v a_o infallible_a assurance_n be_v because_o all_o certainty_n ground_v upon_o sole_a authority_n can_v be_v no_o great_a than_o the_o authority_n that_o ground_n it_o since_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o relator_n all_o humane_a authority_n be_v absolute_o fallible_a it_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v ground_v in_o we_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n this_o doctrine_n be_v express_o deliver_v by_o the_o bishop_n §_o 16._o num_fw-la 6._o where_o speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n he_o say_v if_o they_o be_v warrant_v unto_o we_o by_o any_o authority_n less_o than_o divine_a than_o all_o thing_n contain_v in_o they_o which_o have_v no_o great_a assurance_n than_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o they_o be_v contain_v be_v not_o object_n of_o divine_a belief_n which_o once_o grant_v will_v enforce_v we_o to_o yield_v that_o all_o the_o article_n of_o christian_a belief_n have_v no_o great_a assurance_n then_o humane_a and_o moral_a faith_n or_o credulity_n can_v afford_v a_o authority_n then_o simple_o divine_a must_v make_v good_a the_o scripture_n infallibility_n at_o least_o in_o the_o last_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o that_o point_n this_o authority_n can_v be_v any_o testimony_n or_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n alone_o for_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o man_n subject_a to_o error_n thus_o he_o no_o humane_a testimony_n therefore_o in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n can_v make_v good_a the_o scripture_n infallibility_n that_o be_v give_v we_o a_o infallible_a assurance_n of_o that_o or_o any_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o how_o this_o can_v stand_v with_o what_o he_o deliver_v §_o 19_o num_fw-la 1._o when_o speak_v of_o the_o very_a same_o question_n viz._n of_o scriptures-being_a god_n word_n he_o positive_o affirm_v we_o may_v be_v even_o infallible_o assure_v thereof_o by_o ecclesiastical_a and_o humane_a proof_n i_o see_v not_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_n this_o be_v not_o the_o first_o contradiction_n we_o have_v observe_v in_o his_o lordship_n discourse_n nor_o will_v it_o serve_v his_o turn_n to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v that_o by_o infallible_a assurance_n ibidem_fw-la may_v be_v understand_v no_o more_o then_o that_o the_o thing_n believe_v be_v true_a and_o truth_n qua_fw-la talis_fw-la can_v be_v false_a for_o however_o he_o play_v with_o the_o word_n infallible_a yet_o that_o can_v touch_v assurance_n for_o the_o infallibility_n he_o there_o talk_v of_o be_v only_o in_o the_o object_n and_o that_o in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la too_o viz._n only_o so_o long_o as_o the_o object_n remain_v so_o but_o assurance_n relate_v to_o the_o subject_n or_o person_n believe_v and_o his_o act_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n we_o chief_o mean_v when_o we_o teach_v that_o faith_n be_v of_o divine_a and_o infallible_a certainty_n for_o otherwise_o in_o the_o bishop_n sense_n of_o infallibility_n there_o be_v no_o true_a proposition_n how_o contingent_a and_o uncertain_a soever_o in_o itself_o of_o which_o we_o may_v not_o be_v say_v to_o be_v infallible_o certain_a so_o for_o example_n shall_v i_o say_v mere_o by_o guess_n the_o pope_n be_v now_o at_o rome_n or_o in_o the_o conclave_n and_o it_o be_v so_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la i_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v infallible_o certain_a of_o it_o which_o be_v extreme_o absurd_a as_o confound_v verity_n with_o infallibility_n which_o no_o true_a philosophy_n will_v admit_v wherefore_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o distinguish_v as_o the_o bishop_n do_v here_o one_o infallibility_n cui_fw-la non_fw-la subest_fw-la falsum_fw-la viz._n
the_o whole_a church_n when_o necessity_n require_v and_o particular_o over_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o be_v then_o rise_v to_o the_o high_a patriarchall_a dignity_n in_o the_o church_n next_o the_o pope_n in_o those_o very_a epistle_n where_o saint_n gregory_n so_o much_o inveigh_v against_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o he_o that_o arrogant_o assume_v it_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d st._n gregory_n predecessor_n annul_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n wherein_o this_o title_n have_v be_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n and_o do_v not_o st_n gregory_n himself_o repeal_v it_o again_o and_o threaten_v to_o excommunicate_v john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o case_n he_o desist_v not_o from_o the_o usurpation_n of_o it_o ecclesiam_fw-la 〈◊〉_d say_v st._n gregory_n 76._o i_o will_v use_v the_o church_n authority_n against_o he_o another_o argument_n that_o st._n gregory_n take_v not_o the_o word_n universal_a in_o the_o metaphorical_a sense_n when_o he_o call_v it_o antichristian_a and_o blasphemous_a be_v that_o even_o in_o the_o epistle_n here_o cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n he_o teach_v that_o the_o care_n and_o principality_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v commit_v to_o st._n peter_n which_o be_v all_o that_o the_o metaphorical_a sense_n of_o oecumenicus_fw-la or_o universal_a contain_v and_o yet_o deny_v he_o be_v ever_o call_v universal_a apostle_n he_o grant_v likewise_o that_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v supreme_a ecclesiastical_a governor_n of_o the_o whole_a jewish_a church_n yet_o be_v not_o call_v universal_a priest_n all_o which_o evident_o show_v that_o st._n gregory_n quarrel_v not_o the_o word_n in_o that_o signification_n why_o because_o he_o acknowledge_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o it_o this_o premise_a it_o will_v not_o be_v hard_a to_o answer_v all_o the_o bishop_n object_n against_o we_o in_o this_o particular_a to_o his_o first_o objection_n we_o grant_v that_o 12._o according_a to_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n in_o which_o st._n gregory_n take_v it_o the_o assume_v such_o a_o title_n argue_v so_o great_a a_o pride_n in_o the_o assumer_n as_o may_v portend_v the_o nearness_n of_o antichrist_n time_n to_o his_o second_o take_v the_o word_n universal_a in_o the_o sense_n disclaim_v by_o st._n gregory_n and_o the_o word_n monarch_n in_o its_o rigorous_a propriety_n whereby_o it_o answer_v to_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o oecumenicus_fw-la or_o universalis_fw-la episcopus_fw-la i_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v ever_o any_o universal_a bishop_n or_o monarch_n over_o the_o whole_a militaut_n church_n either_o for_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n before_o st._n gregory_n or_o at_o any_o time_n since_o for_o to_o be_v a_o monarch_n over_o the_o church_n in_o propriety_n of_o speech_n or_o such_o a_o universal_a bishop_n be_v in_o effect_n to_o un-bishop_n all_o other_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n and_o make_v they_o only_a officer_n ad_fw-la placitum_fw-la and_o delegate_n of_o the_o say_v universal_a bishop_n or_o monarch_n placeable_a and_o displaceable_a at_o his_o sole_a pleasure_n like_o the_o officer_n of_o temporal_a monarch_n to_o what_o he_o allege_v out_o of_o baronius_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o his_o giving_z the_o title_n of_o universal_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o a_o council_n about_o the_o year_n 1076._o i_o answer_v it_o signify_v no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o ancient_o the_o say_a title_n still_o understand_v in_o the_o metaphorical_a and_o lawful_a sense_n be_v due_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o no_o other_o which_o be_v undeniable_o true_a neither_o be_v we_o to_o think_v that_o those_o seven_o and_o twenty_o dictatus_fw-la papae_fw-la as_o they_o be_v call_v recount_v by_o baronius_n and_o object_v here_o by_o the_o bishop_n be_v all_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o catalogue_n or_o abridgement_n of_o such_o privilege_n as_o partly_o by_o divine_a institution_n partly_o by_o long_a custom_n and_o prescription_n partly_o by_o canon_n and_o partly_o by_o probable_a consequence_n draw_v from_o principle_n of_o faith_n be_v find_v agreeable_a to_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n 5._o what_o he_o say_v of_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n confer_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n upon_o boniface_n the_o three_o thereby_o intimate_v that_o it_o be_v never_o give_v to_o pope_n before_o be_v most_o false_a for_o all_o that_o phocas_n do_v be_v but_o to_o declare_v that_o the_o title_n in_o contest_v do_v of_o right_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n only_o which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a evidence_n that_o before_o the_o say_a declaration_n it_o have_v be_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n neither_o be_v there_o of_o this_o any_o question_n all_o the_o dispute_n be_v whether_o it_o may_v not_o be_v also_o extend_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o this_o indeed_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o negative_a by_o phocas_n now_o who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o far_a different_a thing_n to_o declare_v a_o title_n or_o dignity_n to_o be_v of_o right_a due_a and_o another_o to_o confer_v it_o de_fw-fr novo_fw-la upon_o any_o one_o if_o his_o late_a majesty_n of_o glorious_a memory_n have_v be_v please_v when_o time_n be_v to_o have_v declare_v w._n l._n patriarch_n of_o england_n we_o may_v well_o suppose_v his_o lordship_n will_v not_o have_v grant_v the_o title_n have_v be_v de_fw-la novo_fw-la confer_v on_o he_o see_v he_o have_v already_o contend_v that_o long_o before_o viz_o in_o vrban_n the_o second_o be_v time_n it_o be_v give_v to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n but_o put_v case_n phocas_n have_v indeed_o confer_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n upon_o pope_n boniface_n as_o a_o new_a dignity_n not_o former_o belong_v to_o he_o yet_o will_v it_o make_v but_o little_a to_o his_o lordship_n purpose_n for_o we_o say_v again_o it_o be_v not_o all_o one_o to_o have_v a_o title_n confer_v by_o another_o and_o to_o assume_v or_o use_v it_o one_o self_n the_o bishop_n shall_v have_v prove_v that_o pope_n boniface_n use_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n in_o his_o ordinary_a style_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v prove_v to_o have_v do_v of_o late_a time_n and_o as_o ancient_o the_o say_v john_n and_o cyriacus_n his_o successor_n attempt_v to_o do_v which_o be_v the_o thing_n st._n gregory_n inveigh_v against_o the_o bishop_n therefore_o make_v here_o a_o fallacious_a turn_v when_o he_o shift_v the_o question_n from_o take_v to_o give_v and_o pass_v from_o one_o self_n to_o another_o person_n let_v it_o be_v show_v that_o boniface_n the_o three_o or_o any_o other_o pope_n his_o successourss_n assume_v this_o title_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n do_v for_o till_o this_o be_v prove_v it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o either_o pelagius_n and_o st._n gregory_n err_v in_o reprove_v and_o condemn_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinoples_n undue_a assume_v that_o title_n to_o himself_o or_o that_o pope_n boniface_n and_o his_o successor_n do_v err_v by_o have_v it_o declare_v due_a to_o they_o by_o another_o why_o may_v not_o the_o same_o person_n be_v very_o unwilling_a to_o take_v a_o extravagant_a title_n upon_o himself_o and_o yet_o for_o good_a reason_n be_v well_o content_a that_o another_o give_v it_o he_o who_o know_v not_o that_o ancient_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v style_v caput_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la custos_fw-la vineae_fw-la and_o vicarius_fw-la christi_fw-la they_o be_v title_n due_a to_o his_o place_n and_o office_n and_o though_o the_o pope_n gainsay_v they_o not_o yet_o christian_a humility_n ever_o teach_v they_o to_o forbear_v the_o use_n of_o such_o title_n themselves_o the_o relatour_n here_o profess_v to_o give_v a_o historical_a account_n how_o the_o ibidem_fw-la pope_n grow_v under_o the_o emperor_n and_o by_o degree_n attain_v the_o height_n they_o be_v now_o at_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o in_o temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n the_o pope_n grow_v great_a by_o the_o patronage_n of_o christian_a emperor_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n if_o he_o will_v have_v say_v any_o thing_n material_a he_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o the_o pope_n rose_n by_o the_o emperor_n mean_n to_o their_o spiritual_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o other_o bishop_n throughout_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n they_o claim_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la and_o which_o be_v so_o annex_v to_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o office_n by_o christ_n institution_n without_o the_o least_o dependence_n of_o any_o emperor_n or_o secular_a power_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n deprive_v of_o all_o his_o temporalty_n which_o can_v never_o be_v do_v by_o any_o secular_a power_n without_o commit_v a_o most_o enormous_a sacrilege_n and_o reduce_v to_o the_o
but_o this_o viz._n that_o its_o decree_n be_v universal_o receive_v as_o obligatory_a by_o all_o particular_a church_n or_o the_o whole_a church_n diffusive_a neither_o be_v this_o confirmation_n so_o simple_o and_o absolute_o necessary_a but_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n lawful_o assemble_v and_o due_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v obligatory_a without_o it_o and_o antecedent_o to_o it_o but_o what_o if_o st._n austin_n say_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o bishop_n cite_v he_o for_o viz._n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n diffusive_a that_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n authority_n his_o word_n be_v these_o 18._o illis_fw-la temporibus_fw-la antequàm_fw-la plenarij_fw-la concilij_fw-la sententiâ_fw-la quid_fw-la in_o hâc_fw-la re_fw-la sequendum_fw-la esset_fw-la totius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consensio_fw-la confirmasset_fw-la visum_fw-la est_fw-la ei_fw-la etc._n etc._n where_o it_o be_v evident_a the_o father_n speak_v of_o st._n cyprian_n error_n the_o whole_a drift_n of_o his_o speech_n be_v to_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v the_o more_o excusable_a in_o he_o because_o he_o defend_v it_o only_o before_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o general_n council_n establish_v what_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v in_o that_o point_n be_v this_o to_o say_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n be_v to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n yield_v to_o it_o and_o not_o otherwise_o as_o the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o persuade_v we_o sure_o no._n to_o conclude_v therefore_o we_o think_v the_o bishop_n can_v not_o well_o have_v more_o effectual_o justify_v our_o assertion_n concern_v the_o authority_n both_o of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o general_n council_n then_o by_o cite_v this_o text_n of_o st._n austin_n since_o it_o clear_o signify_v that_o the_o church_n do_v settle_v and_o determine_v matter_n of_o controversy_n by_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o general_n council_n in_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n consent_n be_v both_o virtual_o include_v and_o effectual_o declare_v 8._o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o yet_o well_o please_v with_o a._n c._n but_o go_v on_o in_o his_o 2._o angry_a exception_n against_o he_o for_o interpose_v as_o he_o tell_v we_o new_a matter_n quite_o out_o of_o the_o conference_n but_o how_o can_v it_o be_v call_v new_a matter_n as_o not_o pertinent_a to_o the_o question_n debate_v in_o the_o conference_n if_o a._n c._n urge_v and_o prove_v by_o what_o reason_n he_o can_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n for_o end_v controversy_n in_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o point_n his_o adversary_n most_o especial_o deny_v a._n c._n desire_n to_o know_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v for_o reunite_a the_o church_n in_o case_n of_o heresy_n and_o division_n when_o a_o general_a council_n can_v be_v hold_v by_o reason_n of_o manifold_a impediment_n or_o be_v call_v will_v not_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n have_v christ_n our_o lord_n say_v he_o in_o this_o case_n provide_v no_o rule_n no_o judge_n infallible_a to_o determine_v controversy_n and_o procure_v unity_n and_o certainty_n of_o belief_n yes_o say_v the_o bishop_n he_o have_v leave_v a_o infallible_a rule_n the_o scripture_n but_o this_o answer_n a._n c._n foreseeing_a prevent_v by_o his_o follow_a word_n 60_o have_v the_o relatour_n please_v to_o set_v they_o down_o which_o show_v the_o inconvenience_n of_o admit_v that_o rule_n as_o protestant_n admit_v it_o since_o it_o render_v all_o matter_n of_o faith_n uncertain_a what_o say_v the_o bishop_n to_o that_o first_o he_o cunning_o dissemble_v the_o objection_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o a._n c._n s_o discourse_n to_o that_o purpose_n and_o yet_o find_v it_o necessary_a to_o apply_v some_o salve_n to_o the_o sore_a he_o add_v in_o the_o second_o place_n as_o it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o tacit_fw-la prevention_n in_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n the_o scripture_n by_o the_o manifest_a place_n of_o it_o which_o admit_v no_o dispute_n nor_o need_v any_o external_a judge_n to_o interpret_v they_o be_v able_a to_o settle_v unity_n and_o certainty_n of_o belief_n 3._o among_o christian_n and_o about_o thing_n not_o necessary_a there_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v contention_n to_o a_o separation_n and_o therefore_o no_o matter_n how_o uncertain_a and_o undetermined_a they_o be_v but_o sure_o here_o the_o bishop_n go_v too_o far_o and_o lose_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o labyrinth_n for_o if_o by_o matter_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n he_o understand_v only_o such_o as_o be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o be_v express_o know_v and_o believe_v by_o all_o christian_n necessitate_v medii_fw-la as_o divine_v speak_v though_o we_o shall_v grant_v they_o be_v so_o clear_a in_o scripture_n as_o not_o to_o fall_v under_o dispute_n among_o christian_n yet_o to_o affirm_v as_o he_o do_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o contention_n to_o a_o separation_n about_o any_o other_o point_n be_v to_o condemn_v the_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o have_v ever_o oblige_v her_o child_n under_o pain_n of_o anathema_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o thousand_o of_o sectary_n and_o heretic_n as_o namely_o from_o the_o montanist_n the_o quartodecimani_a the_o rebaptizer_n monothelite_n pelagian_n semipelagian_n vigilantian_n iconoclast_n and_o the_o like_a who_o hold_v all_o those_o foresay_a necessary_a matter_n and_o err_v only_o in_o such_o as_o be_v not_o absolute_o and_o universal_o necessary_a to_o be_v express_o know_v and_o believe_v by_o all_o christian_n whatsoever_o but_o if_o by_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n he_o mean_v any_o of_o those_o which_o divine_v term_v necessary_a necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la he_o shall_v have_v assign_v they_o in_o particular_a for_o till_o that_o be_v do_v such_o general_n answer_v as_o the_o bishop_n here_o give_v signify_v nothing_o either_o to_o the_o just_a satisfaction_n of_o we_o or_o security_n of_o their_o own_o proceed_n since_o they_o can_v possible_o know_v in_o what_o point_v they_o ought_v to_o hold_v contention_n to_o a_o separation_n and_o in_o what_o not_o moreover_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v at_o large_a chap._n 2._o and_o in_o other_o place_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o believe_v whatever_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n whether_o clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o not_o it_o follow_v there_o must_v be_v some_o other_o infallible_a rule_n beside_o scripture_n whereon_o to_o ground_v our_o faith_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v not_o clear_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n the_o holy_a scripture_n alone_o be_v not_o qualify_v for_o such_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v make_v we_o believe_v it_o be_v for_o though_o it_o may_v be_v grant_v 4._o to_o be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a in_o itself_o yet_o be_v it_o not_o so_o in_o order_n to_o we_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o know_v to_o we_o for_o god_n word_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n assure_v we_o of_o that_o truth_n and_o he_o be_v very_o much_o mistake_v when_o he_o suppose_v the_o ancient_a church_n have_v no_o other_o additional_a infallible_a rule_n viz._n tradition_n by_o which_o to_o direct_v their_o counsel_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n alledgeable_a out_o of_o bellarmin_n contrary_a to_o this_o sense_n if_o his_o word_n be_v candid_o interpret_v tertullian_n indeed_o call_v scripture_n the_o principal_a rule_n and_o we_o if_o we_o have_v not_o sufficient_o acknowledge_v it_o already_o upon_o sundry_a occasion_n will_v now_o say_v so_o too_o it_o be_v the_o principal_a not_o the_o only_a rule_n he_o adore_v the_o fullness_n of_o scripture_n so_o do_v we_o as_o to_o that_o particular_a point_n about_o which_o he_o then_o dispute_v we_o confess_v the_o scripture_n do_v most_o full_o prove_v against_o hermogenes_n the_o heretic_n that_o the_o world_n or_o matter_n whereof_o this_o world_n consist_v be_v not_o eternal_a but_o create_v by_o god_n in_o time_n again_o it_o be_v no_o way_n probable_a that_o tertullian_n here_o extend_v the_o fullness_n of_o scripture_n so_o far_o as_o to_o exclude_v all_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o in_o other_o part_n of_o his_o virgin_n work_n he_o maintain_v more_o express_o than_o many_o other_o of_o the_o father_n what_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o his_o whole_a book_n de_fw-fr praescriptionibus_fw-la but_o to_o show_v that_o heretic_n can_v be_v confute_v by_o scripture_n alone_o without_o tradition_n now_o we_o say_v both_o with_o he_o st._n hierome_n and_o st._n basil_n that_o to_o superinduce_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o what_o be_v write_v be_v a_o manifest_a error_n in_o faith_n and_o that_o it_o have_v a_o woe_n annex_v to_o it_o but_o to_o superinduce_v what_o be_v no_o way_n dissonant_n but_o rather_o consonant_a and_o agreeable_a to_o scripture_n have_v no_o such_o curse_n
often_o declare_v because_o 7._o he_o teach_v it_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o bishop_n since_o in_o the_o place_n allege_v he_o declare_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n only_o as_o it_o be_v contradistinct_a from_o the_o government_n of_o temporal_a prince_n not_o as_o inferior_a bishop_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o supreme_a or_o chief_a bishop_n that_o be_v another_o question_n and_o treat_v by_o he_o in_o another_o place_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o his_o purpose_n there_o to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o ecclesiastical_a not_o temporal_a prince_n without_o dispute_v whether_o the_o say_v ecclesiastical_a governor_n be_v subordinate_a or_o not_o one_o to_o another_o but_o the_o bishop_n proceed_v in_o his_o objection_n and_o tell_v we_o the_o church_n militant_a remain_v spread_v in_o many_o earthly_a kingdom_n can_v so_o well_o be_v order_v by_o one_o monarch_n as_o a_o particular_a kingdom_n may_v by_o one_o king_n for_o how_o say_v he_o will_v this_o one_o supreme_a execute_v his_o office_n if_o the_o 10._o king_n of_o those_o several_a kingdom_n will_v not_o give_v leave_n i_o answer_v first_o this_o difficulty_n make_v as_o much_o against_o the_o aristocratical_a form_n of_o church-government_n as_o the_o monarchical_a for_o how_o will_v a_o general_n council_n to_o use_v his_o own_o term_n enter_v to_o execute_v their_o office_n when_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n require_v such_o a_o convention_n if_o the_o king_n of_o those_o several_a kingdom_n from_o whence_o the_o prelate_n be_v to_o come_v will_v not_o give_v leave_n nay_o how_o can_v the_o bishop_n of_o any_o one_o christian_a kingdom_n meet_v in_o synod_n if_o their_o respective_a sovereign_n to_o who_o the_o relatour_n will_v have_v they_o subject_a even_o in_o spiritual_n will_v not_o give_v leave_n 5._o as_o to_o his_o surmise_n that_o we_o will_v have_v one_o emperor_n over_o all_o 11._o king_n as_o well_o as_o one_o pope_n over_o all_o bishop_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v a_o chimaera_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n and_o as_o impossible_a for_o he_o to_o know_v as_o for_o any_o of_o his_o party_n to_o deny_v with_o truth_n that_o we_o pray_v for_o peace_n and_o unity_n among_o all_o christian_a prince_n wish_v nothing_o more_o then_o that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o may_v enjoy_v and_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o his_o own_o right_n but_o here_o the_o bishop_n take_v occasion_n to_o fall_v foul_a upon_o innocent_a the_o three_o because_o forsooth_o compare_v the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a power_n to_o the_o two_o great_a light_n the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n he_o make_v the_o sun_n a_o symbol_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o the_o moon_n of_o the_o civil_a power_n which_o the_o relatour_n interpret_v for_o we_o to_o signify_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n i_o answer_v first_o do_v not_o man_n love_v contention_n there_o will_v be_v no_o quarrel_v about_o such_o conceit_n as_o these_o which_o be_v never_o take_v for_o argumentative_a but_o mere_o allusive_a application_n of_o the_o sacred_a text_n touch_v these_o two_o power_n which_o diverse_o consider_v give_v ground_n to_o different_a allegory_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n both_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n may_v not_o unfit_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o moon_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o decline_a condition_n but_o in_o time_n of_o prosperity_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o same_o church_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o extent_n and_o greatness_n of_o her_o power_n beyond_o the_o imperial_a it_o reach_v to_o all_o place_n and_o person_n in_o the_o world_n profess_v christian_n faith_n as_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o its_o object_n viz._n thing_n celestial_a whereas_o the_o object_n of_o the_o imperial_a power_n be_v only_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n there_o be_v little_a question_n but_o the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n excel_v the_o imperial_a no_o less_o than_o the_o soul_n do_v the_o body_n or_o eternity_n the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n in_o this_o regard_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v no_o just_a matter_n of_o offence_n for_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o emperor_n by_o the_o moon_n but_o the_o pope_n forsooth_o make_v too_o much_o odds_o between_o his_o own_o power_n and_o the_o emperor_n abase_v that_o of_o the_o emperor_n so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v it_o forty_o seven_o time_n less_o than_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n which_o the_o bishop_n prove_v from_o the_o gloss_n upon_o this_o decretal_a we_o answer_v the_o allegory_n lead_v the_o glosser_n to_o it_o and_o that_o be_v rather_o a_o flourish_n of_o wit_n and_o pious_a conceit_n than_o matter_n of_o solid_a argument_n it_o be_v but_o lose_v time_n for_o our_o adversary_n to_o make_v inference_n from_o it_o and_o will_v be_v the_o like_a in_o we_o to_o answer_v they_o the_o matter_n we_o stand_v upon_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n let_v our_o adversary_n disprove_v this_o and_o not_o trifle_v about_o allegory_n we_o confess_v also_o that_o the_o emperor_n be_v supreme_a over_o his_o subject_n in_o all_o civil_a affair_n in_o fuch_n sort_n as_o neither_o of_o these_o power_n can_v of_o right_o hinder_v the_o other_o in_o the_o due_a execution_n of_o their_o charge_n they_o be_v both_o of_o they_o absolute_a and_o independent_a power_n though_o each_o in_o their_o proper_a orb_n the_o one_o in_o spiritual_n the_o other_o in_o temporal_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v we_o be_v far_o from_o depress_v the_o imperial_a power_n low_o than_o god_n have_v make_v it_o as_o the_o relatour_n most_o injurious_o charge_v we_o no_o we_o honour_v and_o very_o willing_o acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n in_o tertullia_n style_n hominem_fw-la scapulam_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la secundum_fw-la &_o solo_fw-la deo_fw-la minorem_fw-la viz._n in_o the_o administration_n of_o all_o civil_a affair_n in_o which_o doubtless_o all_o person_n within_o his_o dominion_n aught_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o yet_o do_v it_o not_o belong_v to_o the_o emperor_n to_o order_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n resolve_v controversy_n of_o faith_n or_o interpret_v scripture_n in_o any_o sense_n contrary_a to_o the_o judgement_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o lawful_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n he_o have_v no_o power_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n neither_o shall_v we_o ever_o read_v that_o any_o of_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o reform_v religion_n on_o their_o own_o account_n without_o or_o contrary_n to_o the_o say_a pastor_n 6._o a_o book_n of_o the_o law_n it_o be_v true_a be_v ancient_o by_o god_n special_a command_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o king_n deut._n 17._o 18._o but_o to_o what_o intent_n be_v it_o give_v to_o govern_v the_o church_n by_o read_v it_o or_o expound_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n when_o it_o happen_v to_o come_v in_o controversy_n sure_o no_o it_o be_v give_v he_o to_o govern_v himself_o and_o kingdom_n by_o it_o that_o by_o read_v it_o he_o may_v learn_v to_o fear_n god_n and_o keep_v his_o word_n and_o statute_n command_v in_o it_o as_o the_o text_n itself_o declare_v neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o in_o case_n of_o notorious_a and_o gross_a abuse_n manifest_o contrary_a to_o religion_n and_o connive_v at_o by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n christian_a prince_n may_v both_o lawful_o and_o pious_o use_v their_o authority_n in_o procure_v the_o say_a abuse_n to_o be_v effectual_o redress_v by_o the_o say_a pastor_n as_o the_o example_n of_o ezekias_n and_o josias_n prove_v allege_v by_o the_o bishop_n but_o they_o prove_v not_o that_o prince_n may_v themselves_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o priest_n office_n either_o in_o whole_a or_o part_n they_o prove_v not_o that_o they_o may_v reform_v religion_n in_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o or_o enact_v any_o thing_n pertain_v thereto_o by_o their_o own_o authority_n without_o or_o contrary_a to_o the_o priest_n consent_n they_o prove_v not_o that_o prince_n may_v determine_v the_o controversy_n of_o the_o law_n god_n have_v express_o reserve_v they_o to_o the_o priest_n judgement_n and_o command_v all_o to_o submit_v to_o it_o under_o pain_n of_o death_n nay_o point_n blank_a to_o the_o contrary_n we_o read_v 2._o paralip_n 26._o 20._o that_o osias_n though_o a_o king_n be_v strike_v by_o god_n with_o a_o sudden_a leprosy_n for_o but_o attempt_v to_o usurp_v the_o priest_n office_n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o unlawful_a then_o must_v needs_o now_o be_v yet_o more_o by_o how_o much_o the_o function_n of_o the_o evangelical_n priesthood_n be_v more_o sacred_a spiritual_a and_o participative_o divine_a than_o those_o of_o the_o moysaicall_a law_n 7._o nor_o do_v the_o pope_n ever_o attempt_v or_o so_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o bring_v the_o emperor_n under_o they_o in_o
instruct_v his_o apostle_n touch_v all_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n especial_o consider_v what_o himself_o profess_v in_o his_o prayer_n for_o they_o to_o the_o father_n john_n 17._o 8_o 14._o i_o have_v give_v unto_o they_o the_o word_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o and_o they_o have_v receive_v they_o &c_n &c_n can_v those_o word_n in_o any_o protestant_n opinion_n signify_v less_o than_o all_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n his_o lordship_n here_o stumble_v in_o the_o plain_a way_n endeavour_v to_o impose_v this_o absurd_a disjunctive_a upon_o his_o reader_n viz._n that_o all_o truth_n must_v either_o signify_v simple_o all_o whatsoever_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o well_o as_o faith_n or_o be_v restrain_v to_o truth_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o be_v without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v in_o any_o circumstance_n be_v save_v the_o apparent_a falsity_n whereof_o a_o man_n half_n blind_a may_v perceive_v it_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o say_v that_o either_o all_o man_n be_v wise_a and_o learned_a or_o none_o but_o socrates_n and_o plato_n to_o as_o little_a purpose_n be_v his_o other_o limitation_n viz._n that_o a_o council_n be_v then_o only_o infallible_a when_o it_o suffer_v itself_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o bless_a spirit_n by_o ibidem_fw-la the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o this_o again_o it_o seem_v that_o in_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n a_o general_n council_n be_v not_o absolute_o infallible_a but_o may_v possible_o refuse_v to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o fall_v into_o fundamental_a error_n in_o which_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o constant_a to_o himself_o profess_v the_o contrary_a when_o it_o make_v for_o his_o turn_n but_o if_o it_o may_v so_o err_v what_o a_o sad_a condition_n may_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v in_o since_o what_o a_o general_a council_n teach_v be_v as_o obligatory_a to_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o what_o the_o parliament_n enact_v be_v obligatory_a to_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n his_o last_o shift_n to_o evade_v the_o force_n of_o those_o word_n lead_v into_o all_o truth_n be_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o assistance_n be_v neither_o so_o absolute_a nor_o ibidem_fw-la in_o such_o manner_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o apostle_n nor_o direct_o to_o a_o council_n at_o all_o who_o contend_v it_o be_v who_o make_v it_o a_o question_n whether_o the_o promise_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o more_o absolute_o and_o direct_o intend_v to_o the_o apostle_n then_o to_o the_o church_n or_o not_o more_o absolute_o and_o direct_o to_o the_o chureh_n then_o to_o general_n council_n it_o suffice_v we_o if_o it_o be_v in_o any_o sort_n true_o and_o real_o intend_v to_o they_o all_o and_o that_o so_o it_o be_v the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o promise_n evince_v since_o otherwise_o neither_o the_o say_v succeed_a pastor_n northe_a church_n of_o their_o time_n can_v infallible_o decide_v any_o arise_v controversy_n touch_v the_o sense_n of_o scriptural_a text_n which_o be_v not_o only_o ambiguous_a but_o liable_a to_o damnable_a interpretation_n as_o the_o scripture_n itself_o averr_v 2_o pet._n 3._o 16._o much_o less_o determine_v any_o point_n of_o faith_n not_o express_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n as_o many_o be_v not_o but_o note_n that_o to_o the_o close_a word_n of_o this_o first_o text_n and_o that_o for_o ever_o the_o bishop_n say_v not_o any_o thing_n the_o truth_n be_v their_o clearness_n be_v not_o easy_o elude_v to_o the_o second_o proof_n which_o be_v from_o matth._n 28._o 20._o behold_v i_o be_o 3._o with_o you_o 〈◊〉_d unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o bishop_n answer_v the_o father_n be_v various_a in_o their_o exposition_n and_o application_n of_o this_o text._n we_o grant_v they_o be_v various_a in_o word_n but_o agree_v in_o sense_n and_o that_o the_o same_o in_o effect_n we_o here_o plead_v for_o the_o father_n by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n understand_v a_o presence_n of_o aid_n and_o assistance_n to_o support_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n against_o the_o difficulty_n they_o shall_v find_v for_o preach_v christ._n but_o be_v heresy_n and_o the_o perverse_a maintainer_n of_o they_o no_o part_n of_o the_o difficulty_n christ_n minister_n meet_v with_o in_o preach_v his_o gospel_n sure_o they_o be_v and_o if_o this_o be_v the_o native_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o relatours_n opinion_n it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o the_o say_v minister_n or_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v such_o a_o presence_n of_o christ_n promise_v they_o in_o this_o place_n as_o effectual_o enable_v they_o to_o withstand_v and_o overcome_v those_o difficulty_n which_o in_o reason_n can_v be_v more_o convenient_o effect_v then_o by_o a_o general_n council_n so_o assist_v declare_v against_o they_o but_o say_v our_o adversary_n few_o of_o the_o father_n mention_n christ_n presence_n ibidem_fw-la in_o teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n what_o matter_n that_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o this_o be_v but_o one_o special_a kind_n of_o presence_n and_o the_o father_n usual_o in_o their_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n unless_o some_o particular_a occasion_n carry_v they_o to_o the_o contrary_a content_v themselves_o to_o express_v the_o general_a importance_n of_o the_o sacred_a text_n without_o descend_v to_o particular_n and_o yet_o some_o of_o they_o as_o even_o the_o bishop_n himself_o observe_v do_v express_o interpret_v this_o place_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o they_o do_v not_o extend_v it_o say_v he_o to_o infallible_a assistance_n further_o than_o the_o succeed_v church_n keep_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o apostle_n keep_v to_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o spirit_n no_o more_o do_v we_o we_o confess_v the_o succeed_v church_n can_v not_o be_v infallible_a shall_v it_o depart_v from_o or_o teach_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n no_o more_o than_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o can_v have_v be_v infallible_a have_v they_o depart_v from_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o as_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n consist_v in_o their_o constant_a adhere_n to_o and_o follow_v the_o guidance_n of_o that_o holy_a spirit_n in_o all_o matter_n concern_v faith_n and_o religion_n so_o be_v there_o and_o the_o father_n teach_v such_o a_o presence_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o succeed_v church_n as_o cause_v she_o in_o all_o definition_n of_o faith_n constant_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o as_o need_n require_v infallible_o to_o expound_v it_o all_o which_o we_o have_v sufficient_o 14._o prove_v and_o can_v it_o otherwise_o happen_v christ_n will_v not_o be_v always_o find_v so_o present_a with_o his_o church_n as_o to_o keep_v she_o from_o incur_v ruin_n by_o erroneous_a doctrine_n which_o this_o his_o promise_n must_v at_o least_o imply_v last_o whereas_o maldonat_n prove_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o presence_n by_o infallible_a teach_v be_v right_o gather_v from_o this_o text_n though_o not_o express_o signify_v by_o it_o the_o bishop_n by_o his_o mistranslation_n make_v he_o ibidem_fw-la deny_v it_o to_o be_v the_o intention_n of_o christ_n which_o learned_a author_n do_v not_o only_o assert_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o exposition_n matth._n but_o bring_v in_o proof_n of_o it_o the_o testimony_n of_o st._n cyril_n st._n leo_n and_o salvianus_n to_o the_o three_o matth._n 16._o 18._o touch_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v found_v the_o bishop_n say_v first_o he_o dare_v not_o lay_v any_o other_o 4._o foundation_n than_o christ._n we_o answer_v all_o the_o apostle_n be_v style_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n witness_n st._n paul_n who_o be_v one_o of_o they_o eph._n 2._o 20._o christ_n indeed_o be_v and_o be_v the_o principal_a foundation_n the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n in_o the_o church_n building_n as_o the_o apostle_n there_o speak_v yet_o ministerial_o and_o by_o authority_n derive_v from_o christ_n not_o only_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o st._n peter_n may_v be_v and_o be_v in_o a_o true_a sense_n foundation_n of_o the_o church_n second_o the_o bishop_n say_v and_o he_o do_v but_o say_v it_o that_o st._n peter_n ibidem_fw-la be_v only_o the_o first_o in_o order_n whereas_o the_o father_n teach_v and_o we_o have_v sufficient_o 17._o prove_v that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o the_o first_o in_o order_n but_o in_o authority_n three_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o by_o the_o rock_n be_v not_o mean_v st._n peter_n person_n ibidem_fw-la only_o but_o the_o faith_n which_o he_o profess_v and_o for_o this_o say_v he_o the_o father_n come_v in_o with_o a_o very_a full_a consent_n i_o answer_v we_o pretend_v not_o to_o understand_v by_o the_o rock_n
that_o they_o be_v with_o all_o submission_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o every_o christian_a where_o scripture_n or_o evident_a demonstration_n come_v not_o against_o they_o but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o this_o remedy_n be_v as_o bad_a as_o the_o disease_n a_o general_n council_n be_v a_o awful_a representation_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_o call_v and_o order_v and_o proceed_v lawful_o but_o he_o set_z not_o down_o the_o mark_n whereby_o we_o may_v know_v whether_o it_o be_v lawfuy_o call_v order_v and_o proceed_v lawful_o or_o not_o neither_o do_v he_o tell_v we_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n of_o those_o mark_n a_o general_n council_n say_v he_o can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n keep_v themselves_o to_o god_n rule_n but_o this_o be_v both_o ambig_a vous_fw-fr and_o unsatisfactory_a for_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o a_o council_n can_v err_v so_o long_o as_o it_o teach_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n what_o great_a prerogatlue_n do_v he_o give_v to_o the_o representative_a of_o god_n church_n then_o belong_v to_o any_o private_a doctor_n who_o can_v err_v so_o long_o as_o he_o follow_v and_o cleave_v to_o this_o unerrable_a rule_n if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v if_o it_o consider_v the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a write_v and_o define_v any_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o sense_n in_o which_o they_o understand_v those_o testimony_n how_o can_v they_o be_v tax_v of_o error_n see_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o general_n council_n in_o define_v many_o point_n contrary_a to_o protestant_a doctrine_n do_v conformetheir_o definition_n to_o the_o sense_n in_o which_o upon_o serious_a examination_n they_o understand_v the_o most_o pertinent_a place_n of_o holyscripture_n but_o council_n must_v not_o attempt_v to_o make_v a_o new_a rule_n of_o their_o own_o true_o but_o what_o the_o bishop_n think_v new_a be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o grave_a prelate_n as_o ancient_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o who_o then_o ought_v we_o to_o submit_v to_o he_o that_o be_v a_o priu_fw-mi ate_z doctor_n and_o averr_v it_o to_o be_v new_a or_o to_o that_o lawful_a assembly_n which_o assert_n it_o to_o be_v ancient_a he_o tell_v we_o next_o that_o general_n council_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v by_o cuery_n christian_n with_o all_o submission_n where_o scripture_n and_o evident_a demonstration_n come_v not_o against_o they_o but_o who_o shall_v judge_v i_o pray_v whether_o scripture_n or_o demonstration_n make_v 〈◊〉_d against_o they_o or_o not_o do_v not_o every_o heretic_n that_o spurn_v against_o the_o church_n pretend_v that_o the_o scripture_n he_o urge_v be_v evident_a and_o his_o reason_n a_o demonstration_n you_o will_v reply_v that_o the_o bishop_n do_v not_o mean_a by_o a_o demonstrative_a argument_n such_o a_o one_o as_o appear_v so_o only_o to_o a_o private_a spirit_n but_o such_o as_o be_v propose_v to_o any_o man_n and_o understand_v the_o mind_n can_v choose_v but_o inward_o assent_v unto_o it_o if_o this_o be_v so_o how_o can_v protestant_n be_v excuse_v who_o deny_v many_o point_n define_v by_o general_n council_n many_o learned_a and_o understand_a man_n of_o our_o religion_n have_v read_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n allege_v by_o protestant_n against_o we_o and_o have_v diligent_o ponder_v all_o the_o reason_n and_o pretend_a evidence_n their_o adversary_n bring_v and_o yet_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v convince_v in_o judgement_n that_o they_o evident_o oppose_v the_o belief_n of_o those_o point_n define_v that_o they_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o contrary_a wherefore_o their_o argument_n be_v not_o evident_a in_o themselves_o but_o only_o seem_v so_o to_o their_o private_a spirit_n and_o therefore_o all_o christian_n according_a to_o the_o bishop_n rule_n aught_o to_o submit_v to_o those_o council_n in_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o say_a point_n nor_o will_v it_o serve_v the_o turn_n to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v neverany_n general_n council_n beside_o the_o four_o first_o wherein_o nothing_o be_v define_v contrary_a to_o truth_n for_o hence_o will_v follow_v that_o a_o council_n can_v be_v know_v to_o be_v general_n but_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n nor_o their_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n whence_o will_v be_v deduce_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v nothing_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o council_n but_o that_o we_o ourselves_o be_v the_o sole_a judge_n whether_o the_o definition_n of_o council_n be_v agreeable_a to_o god_n word_n or_o not_o if_o you_o allow_v other_o council_n to_o have_v be_v also_o general_n and_o yet_o to_o have_v false_o teach_v any_o of_o those_o point_n which_o catholic_n now_o hold_v contrary_a to_o protestant_n you_o must_v either_o grant_v that_o scripture_n or_o demonstration_n come_v not_o evident_o against_o they_o or_o aver_v that_o all_o learned_a and_o understand_a catholic_n that_o have_v peruse_v their_o objection_n be_v conuineed_a in_o judgement_n that_o what_o themselves_o hold_v be_v either_o quite_o opposite_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o contrary_a to_o common_a sense_n and_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n both_o which_o be_v manifest_o absurd_a as_o for_o the_o remedy_n he_o apply_v to_o the_o second_o 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v as_o ineffectual_a as_o the_o first_o the_o reason_n he_o bring_v why_o the_o supposition_n jbidem_fw-la of_o fallibility_n in_o general_n council_n do_v not_o make_v way_n for_o the_o whirlwind_n of_o the_o private_a spirit_n be_v because_o private_a spirit_n be_v too_o giddy_a to_o rest_v upon_o scripture_n and_o too_o heady_a and_o shallow_a to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o demonstrative_a argument_n but_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o experience_n for_o which_o of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v tax_v to_o give_v way_n to_o the_o private_a spirit_n refuse_v to_o rest_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v the_o presbyterian_o in_o england_n decline_v testimony_n of_o scripture_n when_o they_o dispute_v with_o the_o prelatist_n against_o episcopacy_n and_o other_o point_n do_v the_o caluinist_n fly_v from_o scripture_n when_o they_o contend_v with_o the_o lutheran_n in_o germany_n against_o consubstantiation_n and_o ubiquity_n or_o with_o the_o arminian_n in_o holland_n about_o predestination_n universal_a grace_n free_a will_n perseverance_n &_o c_o will_v the_o bishop_n make_v we_o believe_v that_o all_o maintainer_n of_o the_o private_a spirit_n be_v so_o void_a of_o understanding_n as_o not_o to_o be_v capable_a of_o a_o demonstrative_a argument_n must_v they_o needs_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n because_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o follow_v the_o dictamen_fw-la of_o their_o own_o reason_n in_o what_o they_o believe_v or_o that_o they_o can_v comprehend_v any_o demonstration_n in_o euclid_n because_o they_o give_v way_n to_o their_o private_a spirit_n in_o the_o understanding_n of_o scripture_n the_o bishop_n esteem_v they_o giddy_a shallow_a insufficient_a and_o uncapable_a of_o a_o demonstrative_a argument_n or_o of_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o they_o and_o their_o follower_n be_v of_o a_o different_a persuasion_n they_o take_v themselves_o to_o be_v and_o be_v repute_v by_o many_o other_o to_o be_v person_n of_o strong_a reason_n sharp_a judgement_n deep_a insight_n in_o what_o belong_v to_o scripture_n and_o upon_o this_o presumption_n they_o will_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o call_v in_o question_n whatever_o suit_n not_o with_o their_o private_a fancy_n now_o to_o think_v that_o their_o private_a spirit_n be_v sufficient_o oppose_v by_o say_v they_o be_v all_o fool_n and_o uncapable_a of_o reason_n be_v in_o my_o opinion_n to_o be_v void_a of_o judgement_n and_o to_o deserve_v the_o like_a censure_n 2._o but_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n austin_n who_o will_v have_v true_a demonstration_n every_o where_o to_o take_v place_n and_o profess_v that_o a_o truth_n so_o clear_o demonstrate_v that_o it_o can_v be_v question_v be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o those_o motive_n by_o which_o 5._o a_o man_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o answer_v his_o word_n be_v only_o conditional_a and_o signify_v that_o in_o case_n any_o true_a and_o cuident_a demonstration_n can_v be_v bring_v against_o the_o motive_n that_o keep_v he_o in_o the_o church_n they_o must_v take_v place_n in_o our_o understanding_n in_o regard_n the_o assent_n which_o arise_v from_o those_o motive_n be_v voluntary_a and_o free_a where_o as_o that_o which_o will_v arise_v from_o such_o demonstrative_a argument_n will_v be_v so_o clear_a and_o necessary_a that_o we_o can_v no_o more_o prevent_v it_o than_o our_o assent_n to_o this_o principle_n the_o whole_a be_v great_a than_o the_o part_n but_o hence_o it_o follow_v no_o more_o that_o the_o church_n can_v define_v what_o be_v cuident_o contradict_v cyther_o by_o scripture_n or_o demonstration_n
no_o long_o that_o which_o nature_n frame_v viz._n bread_n and_o wine_n but_o that_o which_o the_o benediction_n of_o consecration_n have_v make_v it_o to_o be_v what_o be_v that_o but_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n add_v further_o thus_o you_o will_v say_v perhaps_o i_o see_v a_o other_o thing_n why_o do_v you_o tell_v i_o jreceive_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n how_o many_o example_n have_v we_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o 4._o force_n of_o benediction_n be_v great_a then_o that_o of_o nature_n see_v that_o by_o benediction_n even_o nature_n itself_o be_v often_o change_v again_o also_o this_o bread_n be_v bread_n before_o the_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o when_o consecration_n come_v of_o bread_n it_o be_v make_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n they_o that_o desire_v to_o see_v more_o testimony_n to_o confirm_v this_o truth_n may_v find_v they_o in_o bellarmin_n libr._n 3._o the_o eucharist_n cap_n 20._o and_o in_o diverse_a other_o age_n catholic_a author_n even_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n itself_o take_v in_o their_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n do_v evident_o show_v that_o the_o only_a substance_n which_o be_v deliver_v in_o this_o sacrament_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v no_o more_o there_o for_o as_o he_o that_o point_v to_o a_o hogshead_n of_o wine_n say_v this_o be_v wine_n and_o he_o that_o hold_v up_o a_o purse-full_a of_o money_n say_z this_o be_v gold_n if_o he_o intend_v to_o speak_v truth_n must_v signify_v that_o the_o only_a liquor_n contain_v sub_fw-la propria_fw-la forma_fw-la in_o the_o hogshead_n be_v wine_n and_o all_o the_o money_n in_o the_o purse_n gold_n so_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n must_v give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o all_o the_o substance_n contain_v under_o the_o accident_n he_o show_v be_v his_o body_n which_o can_v not_o be_v true_a unless_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n or_o cease_v to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o proposition_n here_o be_v gold_n and_o this_o be_v gold_n he_o that_o hold_v a_o handful_n of_o money_n of_o which_o half_o be_v gold_n and_o half_a silver_n may_v true_o say_v here_o be_v gold_n but_o he_o can_v true_o say_v this_o be_v gold_n so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n if_o there_o be_v both_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o it_o we_o may_v true_o say_v show_v the_o sacrament_n here_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n or_o this_o be_v bread_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o not_o this_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n see_v therefore_o our_o saviour_n at_o this_o last_o supper_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o meaning_n of_o his_o word_n must_v needs_o be_v that_o in_o what_o he_o then_o show_v there_o be_v no_o other_o substance_n but_o that_o of_o his_o body_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v a_o true_a conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n which_o cease_v to_o be_v any_o long_o under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n 4._o a_o other_o pretend_v errourof_o a_o general_n council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o of_o administer_a the_o b._n sacrament_n to_o the_o laity_n under_o one_o kind_n only_o of_o which_o we_o have_v already_o speak_v what_o may_v suffice_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n nevertheless_o to_o that_o little_a which_o the_o relatour_n add_v here_o we_o answer_v brief_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n thomas_n bring_v by_o the_o bishop_n make_v rather_o for_o we_o then_o against_o us._n for_o he_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v a_o custom_n provident_o observe_v in_o some_o church_n not_o to_o give_v the_o sacrament_n in_o form_n of_o wine_n to_o the_o laity_n his_o word_n be_v providè_fw-la in_o quibusdam_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la obseruatur_fw-la ut_fw-la populo_fw-la c._n sanguis_fw-la non_fw-la detur_fw-la this_o provision_n be_v make_v to_o avoid_v the_o danger_n of_o spill_v and_o other_o inconvenience_n which_o likewife_n move_v the_o council_n of_o constance_n to_o make_v a_o general_n decree_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n although_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o not_o only_o in_o st._n thomas_n his_o time_n but_o in_o all_o time_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v both_o public_o allow_v and_o common_o by_o some_o practise_v even_o in_o church_n to_o receive_v under_o one_o kind_n only_o for_o otherwise_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o the_o manichee_n who_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o their_o heresy_n never_o drink_v wine_n nor_o communicate_v under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n shall_v yet_o find_v liberty_n and_o opportunity_n to_o communicate_v among_o catholic_n in_o catholic_a church_n without_o be_v perceive_v as_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o frequent_o do_v in_o 5._o st._n leo_n time_n and_o after_o likewife_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o all_o pat._n heremite_n in_o the_o wildernef_n communicate_v often_o under_o one_o kind_n only_o so_o do_v fratr_n traveller_n in_o their_o journey_n ambros._n sick_a person_n in_o their_o bed_n and_o supiá_fw-la other_o at_o home_n in_o their_o house_n last_o lapsis_fw-la child_n in_o the_o church_n and_o little_a infant_n at_o home_n in_o their_o cradle_n in_o form_n of_o wine_n only_o we_o grant_v that_o in_o ancient_a time_n when_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n be_v but_o small_a it_o be_v the_o ordinary_a custom_n for_o all_o that_o will_v the_o laity_n as_o well_o as_o other_o to_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n in_o both_o kind_n but_o we_o aver_v this_o custom_n proceed_v mere_o out_o of_o free_a denotion_n and_o not_o out_o of_o any_o belief_n that_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a so_o to_o do_v by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n precept_n or_o that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n institution_n to_o do_v otherwise_o this_o therefore_o evince_v not_o that_o which_o the_o bishop_n be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v namely_o that_o receive_v under_o one_o kind_n only_o be_v a_o error_n contrary_a to_o the_o institution_n and_o intention_n of_o christ_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a to_o that_o be_v manifest_a from_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n which_o always_o even_o in_o the_o first_o five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n allow_v it_o public_o to_o be_v take_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n only_o and_o that_o as_o well_o in_o the_o church_n as_o out_o of_o it_o as_o bellarmin_n likewise_o more_o large_o show_v lib._n 4._o the_o eucharist_n cap._n 24._o who_o authority_n the_o bishop_n shoul_n have_v take_v notice_n of_o and_o not_o think_v it_o sufficient_a only_a to_o say_v this_o and_o that_o be_v a_o error_n and_o contrary_a to_o christ_n institution_n without_o show_n of_o proof_n for_o we_o tell_v he_o the_o universal_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o better_a interpreter_n of_o christ_n institution_n than_o the_o bishop_n or_o any_o private_a person_n whatsoever_o and_o so_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o all_o soberminded_n christian_n not_o too_o much_o pervert_v with_o heretical_a prejudice_n will_v in_o time_n acknowledge_v however_o the_o relatour_n by_o his_o silence_n as_o to_o this_o particular_a give_v we_o leave_v to_o go_v on_o and_o consider_v his_o four_o object_v error_n viz._n invocation_n of_o saint_n to_o which_o he_o add_v a_o five_o also_o adoration_n or_o worship_n of_o image_n both_o of_o they_o we_o confess_v be_v point_n admit_v and_o define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o the_o pope_n confirm_v 5._o against_o the_o jnuocation_n of_o saint_n he_o tell_v we_o in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o what_o the_o father_n have_v in_o favour_n of_o it_o be_v only_o rhetorical_a flourish_n for_o the_o stir_v up_o of_o devotion_n as_o they_o think_v very_o good_a when_o the_o father_n deliver_v proposition_n so_o clear_o for_o we_o that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o our_o adversary_n to_o wrest_v they_o to_o any_o contrary_a sense_n then_o all_o be_v but_o rhetoric_n and_o hyperbolical_a strain_n of_o 〈◊〉_d but_o when_o they_o speak_v any_o thing_n that_o bear_v some_o show_n against_o we_o than_o they_o be_v dogmatic_a that_o be_v positive_a divinity_n and_o the_o real_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o this_o fair_a deal_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n how_o can_v it_o seem_v to_o any_o that_o due_o consider_v it_o but_o most_o extreme_o partial_a and_o strange_a to_o term_v so_o many_o exhortation_n so_o many_o plain_a and_o positive_a assertion_n so_o many_o instance_n example_n history_n report_n and_o the_o like_a which_o the_o father_n frequent_o use_v and_o afford_v in_o this_o kind_n and_o that_o upon_o occasion_n wherein_o dogmatic_a and_o plain_a delivery_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o truth_n be_v expect_v
altogether_o unsuspected_a themselves_o to_o be_v warp_a in_o religion_n he_o have_v erroneous_o and_o scandalous_o deliver_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o catholic_a verity_n as_o to_o any_o matter_n of_o abuse_n in_o this_o kind_n creep_v in_o among_o the_o ignorant_a we_o have_v already_o show_v how_o careful_a the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d trent_n be_v to_o provide_v against_o and_o prevent_v all_o inconvenience_n that_o can_v reasonable_o be_v fore_o see_v or_o fear_v and_o if_o notwithstanding_o such_o diligence_n on_o the_o church_n part_n there_o happen_v something_o now_o and_o then_o to_o be_v amiss_o either_o through_o the_o infirmity_n of_o some_o particular_a person_n or_o the_o negligence_n of_o other_o yet_o neither_o be_v the_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n just_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o it_o nor_o yet_o the_o pious_a and_o more_o discrect_a devotion_n of_o the_o rest_n for_o this_o reason_n to_o be_v discountenance_v much_o less_o prohibit_v or_o forbid_v otherwise_o for_o the_o like_a pretend_a reason_n of_o abuse_n and_o scandal_n we_o may_v be_v think_v to_o stand_v oblige_v to_o blot_n out_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d those_o word_n concern_v our_o saniour_n that_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o diverse_a text_n out_o of_o the_o bible_n it_o 〈◊〉_d why_o because_o that_o by_o they_o ignorant_a and_o ill-disposed_a people_n have_v be_v former_o and_o may_v be_v still_o induce_v to_o think_v that_o god_n the_o father_n be_v of_o a_o bodily_a shape_n and_o have_v a_o right_a hand_n and_o a_o left_a as_o man_n have_v and_o likewise_o to_o form_v to_o themselves_o many_o other_o false_a and_o dangerous_a conception_n of_o god_n abuses_n of_o this_o nature_n if_o any_o be_v and_o whensoever_o they_o happen_v must_v be_v redress_v by_o better_a instruction_n and_o information_n but_o the_o pious_a and_o lawful_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n must_v not_o therefore_o be_v abolish_v and_o quite_o take_v away_o 11._o as_o for_o what_o llamas_n a_o spanish_a author_n relate_v of_o the_o people_n of_o asturias_n cantabria_n and_o gallicia_n who_o be_v so_o addict_v 3._o to_o their_o old_a worm-eaten_a and_o ill-fashioned_n image_n that_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o those_o province_n command_v new_a one_o and_o bandsome_a to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o their_o stead_n they_o beg_v even_o with_o tear_n to_o have_v their_o old_a one_o still_o i_o confess_v there_o may_v be_v some_o indiscretion_n in_o their_o proceed_n but_o i_o see_v no_o ground_n the_o bishop_n have_v to_o tax_v they_o of_o 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o people_n do_v not_o cry_v after_o the_o bishop_n officer_n when_o they_o remove_v these_o old_a jmage_n why_o do_v you_o take_v away_o our_o god_n give_v we_o our_o god_n again_o or_o the_o like_a as_o jdolater_n will_v have_v do_v as_o well_o as_o laban_n genes_n 31._o 30._o when_o he_o reprehend_v jacob_n for_o steal_v away_o his_o go_n beside_o what_o ever_o be_v amiss_o in_o this_o kind_n as_o the_o same_o author_n testify_v be_v by_o a_o little_a intruction_n of_o their_o pastor_n quick_o amend_v though_o the_o bishop_n a_o man_n it_o seem_v of_o very_o hard_a belief_n will_v not_o think_v so_o but_o why_o shall_v his_o lordship_n make_v such_o difficulty_n to_o believe_v what_o a_o grave_a author_n report_v of_o his_o own_o knowledge_n as_o to_o what_o he_o further_o infer_v from_o the_o word_n of_o llamas_n namely_o that_o the_o jmage_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n as_o they_o represent_v their_o exemplar_n have_v divinity_n in_o they_o and_o that_o we_o may_v 〈◊〉_d thing_n of_o they_o and_o put_v trust_v in_o they_o in_o that_o regard_n my_o answer_n be_v the_o bishop_n always_o show_v himself_o over_o ready_a to_o expound_v our_o author_n in_o the_o worst_a sense_n even_o many_o time_n where_o there_o be_v no_o rational_a pretence_n this_o author_n sufficient_o show_v he_o can_v have_v no_o such_o meaning_n as_o the_o bishop_n impute_v to_o he_o what_o ever_o his_o word_n may_v seem_v to_o import_v for_o in_o the_o very_a place_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n he_o clear_o teach_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o worship_v jmage_n suprà_fw-la according_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o how_o careful_a that_o council_n be_v that_o all_o may_v be_v due_o instruct_v in_o this_o matter_n and_o no_o occasion_n leave_v even_o for_o the_o most_o ignorant_a and_o weak_a to_o offend_v by_o conceive_v or_o believe_v any_o divine_a power_n to_o be_v in_o the_o jmage_n or_o by_o put_v trust_n in_o they_o or_o cravin_n any_o thing_n of_o they_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n already_o cite_v and_o by_o the_o relatour_n own_o acknowledgement_n who_o style_v the_o father_n religious_o careful_a in_o that_o respect_n add_v hereunto_o the_o proviso_n which_o this_o author_n give_v in_o the_o ibidem_fw-la same_o chapter_n which_o be_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o ask_v nothing_o of_o the_o saint_n no_o not_o of_o our_o b._n lady_n herself_o otherwise_o then_o by_o desire_v they_o to_o beg_v it_o for_o we_o at_o god_n hand_n and_o that_o to_o do_v otherwise_o that_o be_v to_o ask_v any_o thing_n of_o they_o as_o if_o they_o be_v author_n of_o it_o or_o can_v of_o themselves_o alone_o give_v or_o grant_v we_o the_o good_a thing_n we_o ask_v be_v jdolatrie_n thus_o therefore_o we_o hope_v this_o author_n llamas_n his_o intention_n and_o true_a meaning_n be_v clear_v of_o what_o the_o bishop_n impute_v to_o he_o but_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o take_v notice_n also_o how_o weak_o the_o bishop_n illation_n be_v make_v out_o of_o the_o say_a author_n word_n because_o llamas_n write_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d as_o if_o there_o be_v divinity_n in_o they_o as_o they_o be_v material_a thing_n make_v by_o art_n but_o only_o as_o they_o represent_v christ_n and_o the_o saint_n the_o relatour_n infer_v thus_o so_o then_o belike_o according_a to_o the_o divinity_n of_o this_o casuist_n a_o man_n may_v worship_v image_n and_o ask_v of_o they_o and_o put_v tru_v in_o they_o as_o they_o represent_v christ_n and_o his_o saint_n but_o what_o consequence_n be_v this_o how_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o we_o may_v ask_v of_o image_n and_o put_v our_o trust_n in_o they_o as_o they_o represent_v christ_n and_o his_o saint_n because_o we_o may_v worship_v they_o as_o they_o represent_v christ_n and_o his_o saint_n we_o many_o time_n love_v and_o reverence_v a_o picture_n for_o the_o person_n it_o represent_v and_o yet_o no_o body_n be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o ask_v any_o thing_n of_o it_o as_o it_o represent_v that_o person_n we_o show_v a_o 〈◊〉_d respect_n to_o the_o chair_n of_o state_n and_o chamber_n of_o presence_n for_o the_o king_n sake_n yet_o we_o neither_o make_v to_o they_o any_o civil_a invocation_n nor_o place_n confidence_n in_o they_o as_o they_o relate_v to_o the_o king_n why_o therefore_o must_v it_o follow_v that_o we_o may_v call_v upon_o picture_n or_o jmage_n as_o they_o represent_v our_o saviour_n or_o the_o saint_n because_o they_o may_v be_v honour_v or_o worship_v as_o they_o do_v represent_v they_o nor_o be_v it_o less_o ridiculous_a what_o the_o bishop_n add_v in_o pursuance_n of_o his_o discourse_n namely_o his_o resolve_v this_o proposition_n of_o llamas_n the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v not_o as_o if_o there_o be_v any_o divinity_n in_o they_o as_o they_o be_v material_a thing_n make_v by_o art_n but_o as_o they_o represent_v christ_n and_o his_o saint_n into_o this_o other_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n as_o they_o represent_v their_o exemplar_n have_v deity_n or_o divinity_n in_o they_o make_v they_o both_o to_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n for_o why_o may_v he_o not_o as_o well_o have_v resolve_v this_o proposition_n the_o king_n picture_n be_v to_o be_v honour_v not_o as_o if_o there_o be_v sovereign_a authority_n in_o it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o material_a thing_n make_v by_o art_n but_o as_o it_o represent_v the_o king_n into_o this_o other_o the_o king_n picture_n as_o it_o represent_v its_o exemplar_n have_v sovereign_a authority_n in_o it_o the_o bishop_n here_o sure_o give_v the_o reader_n more_o cause_n to_o suspect_v his_o judgement_n touch_v the_o interpretation_n of_o llamas_n then_o upon_o his_o interpretation_n of_o he_o to_o tax_v our_o church_n of_o idolatry_n i_o conclude_v it_o therefore_o most_o certain_a and_o indubitable_a that_o llamas_n in_o the_o word_n cite_v by_o the_o relatour_n intend_v no_o more_o then_o to_o signify_v that_o all_o worship_n do_v to_o jmage_n be_v relative_n and_o not_o absolute_a which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v exhibit_v to_o they_o not_o for_o their_o own_o but_o for_o their_o exemplar_n sake_n which_o they_o represent_v
principle_n shall_v have_v this_o firm_a sure_a and_o undoubt_v faith_n concern_v any_o mystery_n of_o religion_n they_o will_v say_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n revelation_n or_o the_o write_a word_n but_o jaske_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o believe_v any_o divine_a truth_n firm_o certain_o and_o infallible_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o write_a word_n unless_o they_o do_v first_o firm_o certain_o and_o infallible_o believe_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n be_v such_o as_o they_o understand_v and_o how_o can_v they_o believe_v this_o most_o firm_o and_o certain_o if_o they_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v infallible_o sure_a according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n that_o the_o church_n err_v not_o in_o deliver_v such_o and_o such_o book_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o that_o those_o passage_n upon_o which_o they_o ground_n their_o belief_n be_v the_o very_a same_o with_o the_o original_a text_n or_o in_o case_n they_o understand_v not_o the_o original_n that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o error_n commit_v in_o the_o translation_n of_o they_o yea_o do_v they_o not_o hold_v principle_n absolute_o inconsistent_a with_o this_o certainty_n when_o they_o teach_v that_o not_o only_o private_a man_n but_o general_n council_n and_o even_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o great_a consequence_n how_o can_v they_o then_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n for_o which_o they_o believe_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n for_o example_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o themselves_o understand_v they_o and_o not_o in_o the_o sense_n which_o the_o arian_n put_v upon_o they_o if_o general_n council_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v in_o expound_v scripture_n what_o certainty_n of_o belief_n can_v we_o have_v in_o this_o and_o in_o diverse_a other_o like_a point_n if_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o christ_n divinity_n be_v a_o fundamental_a point_n and_o that_o in_o fundamental_a point_n we_o must_v believe_v the_o church_n i_o reply_v this_o answer_n satisfy_v not_o the_o difficulty_n for_o i_o ask_v upon_o what_o ground_n do_v we_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o fundamental_a point_n if_o because_o the_o whole_a church_n teach_v it_o to_o be_v so_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v err_v in_o point_n fundamental_a i_o answer_v it_o must_v first_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o arian_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o if_o they_o be_v a_o part_n of_o it_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v not_o teach_v it_o to_o say_v the_o arian_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n because_o they_o err_v in_o christ_n divinity_n which_o be_v a_o point_n fundamental_a be_v to_o suppose_v that_o for_o certain_a which_o be_v principal_o in_o question_n that_o christ_n divinity_n therefore_o be_v a_o point_n fundamental_a must_v be_v prove_v some_o other_o way_n then_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n if_o that_o way_n be_v scripture_n the_o former_a difficulty_n return_v viz._n how_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v sure_a according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n that_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o catholic_a sense_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o arian_n and_o if_o it_o be_v any_o other_o way_n beside_o scripture_n according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n it_o will_v not_o be_v infallible_a but_o subject_a to_o error_n and_o consequent_o will_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o ground_n infallible_a certainty_n it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o that_o protestant_n stand_v to_o their_o ground_n can_v believe_v either_o the_o trinity_n or_o christ_n divinity_n and_o incarnation_n or_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n by_o his_o death_n or_o any_o other_o mystery_n and_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o that_o firmeness_n and_o certainty_n which_o be_v requisite_a to_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n nay_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o can_v be_v altogether_o sure_a of_o these_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o they_o be_v or_o may_v be_v of_o thing_n relate_v even_o by_o heathen_a historian_n see_v more_o agree_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v true_a then_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o those_o controverted_a point_n be_v such_o as_o protestant_n understand_v these_o argument_n we_o conceive_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v any_o rational_a understanding_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n then_o that_o of_o protestant_n let_v we_o now_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o bishop_n answer_n and_o assertion_n touch_v this_o question_n 3._o whereas_o therefore_o protestant_n do_v common_o tax_v we_o for_o want_v of_o charity_n because_o we_o general_o deny_v salvation_n to_o those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o our_o church_n a._n c._n prove_v that_o this_o denial_n beside_o the_o threaten_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a father_n denounce_v against_o all_o such_o as_o be_v not_o within_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v ground_v even_o upon_o charity_n it_o be_v far_o more_o charitable_a to_o forewarn_v a_o man_n plain_o of_o a_o danger_n then_o to_o let_v he_o run_v into_o it_o through_o a_o false_a security_n there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a faith_n say_v he_o 650_o and_o one_o true_a church_n out_o of_o which_o be_v no_o salvation_n and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v this_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o the_o say_v christ_n himself_o matth._n 18._o 17._o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n if_o salvation_n than_o may_v be_v have_v in_o our_o church_n as_o the_o bishop_n with_o other_o protestant_n consess_v and_o there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n nor_o true_a faith_n but_o one_o in_o and_o by_o which_o salvation_n may_v be_v have_v as_o be_v likewise_o confess_v it_o follow_v that_o out_o of_o our_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n to_o be_v hope_v for_o and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v no_o want_n of_o charity_n in_o we_o to_o tell_v protestant_n of_o this_o but_o rather_o want_v of_o light_n and_o good_a understanding_n in_o they_o to_o think_v our_o admonition_n to_o be_v uncharitable_a the_o bishop_n himself_o confess_v that_o he_o who_o will_v not_o 20._o both_o hear_v and_o obey_v the_o catholic_a christian_a church_n yea_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o which_o he_o live_v too_o so_o far_o as_o it_o in_o necessary_n agree_v with_o the_o universal_a be_v in_o as_o bad_a a_o condition_n as_o a_o heathen_a or_o a_o publican_n and_o perhaps_o in_o some_o respect_v worse_a but_o he_o err_v very_o much_o in_o the_o conceit_n he_o frame_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o must_v teach_v we_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n according_a to_o his_o description_n more_o like_o a_o jdea_n platonica_fw-la or_o chimaera_n of_o some_o fantastical_a brain_n than_o a_o true_a subsistent_a assembly_n or_o society_n of_o christian_n a_o thing_n as_o little_a able_a to_o speak_v or_o declare_v with_o requisite_a authority_n any_o certain_a and_o uniform_a doctrine_n or_o matter_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o himself_o and_o his_o party_n be_v unwilling_a to_o hearken_v to_o the_o truth_n for_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o his_o notion_n nothing_o else_o be_v 〈◊〉_d understand_v but_o a_o mix_a multitude_n of_o all_o 〈◊〉_d and_o fact_n of_o christian_n viz._n greek_o armenian_n lutheran_n caluinist_n prelatical_a and_o presbyterian_a protestant_n anabaptist_n 〈◊〉_d and_o what_o not_o beside_o the_o roman_a catholic_n but_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o such_o a_o church_n as_o this_o shall_v ever_o instruct_v and_o command_v we_o what_o to_o believe_v how_o shall_v a_o man_n that_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d or_o in_o any_o other_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n hear_v the_o common_a voyed_z of_o a_o church_n which_o speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o so_o many_o disagree_a party_n or_o how_o shall_v a_o man_n be_v sure_a that_o such_o and_o such_o a_o doctrine_n be_v right_o command_v he_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n take_v even_o in_o the_o bishop_n own_o sense_n unless_o he_o be_v first_o 〈◊〉_d what_o the_o faith_n be_v without_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n last_o how_o shall_v he_o before_o that_o all_o who_o profess_v that_o faith_n do_v also_o teach_v and_o command_v the_o doctrinal_a which_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d church_n he_o be_v require_v to_o believe_v again_o 5._o if_o donatist_n for_o any_o thing_n the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d hold_v the_o foundation_n and_o consequent_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o if_o error_n that_o ibidem_fw-la come_v too_o near_o 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v shake_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o christian_a belief_n as_o the_o relatour_n pretend_v our_o opinion_n do_v may_v be_v find_v in_o that_o which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o
rome_n or_o after_o he_o be_v pastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n before_o he_o settle_v his_o seat_n at_o rome_n and_o the_o british_a christian_n if_o any_o such_o be_v before_o that_o time_n may_v very_o well_o at_o least_o for_o aught_o the_o bishop_n shew_v to_o the_o contrary_a be_v instruct_v by_o their_o preacher_n to_o believe_v and_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o such_o chap._n 24._o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o point_n touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o roman_a catholic_n and_o the_o roman_a faith_n prove_v to_o be_v the_o same_o now_o that_o it_o ever_o be_v argument_n 1._o all_o catholic_n in_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n and_o all_o protestant_a teacher_n exclude_v by_o the_o bishop_n own_o ground_n 2._o no_o church_n different_a in_o doctrine_n from_o the_o roman_a can_v be_v show_v to_o have_v hold_v all_o fundamental_a point_n in_o all_o age_n 3._o the_o bishop_n confident_a pretence_n to_o salvation_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o faith_n rather_o presumptuous_a then_o well_o ground_v 4._o his_o pretend_v to_o believe_v as_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o four_o first_o general_n council_n believe_v disprove_v by_o instance_n 5._o christ_n descent_n into_o limbus_n patrum_n the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_v of_o image_n the_o public_a allow_v practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 6._o a._n c_o '_o interrogatories_n defend_v 7._o protestant_n have_v not_o the_o same_o bible_n with_o catholic_n in_o any_o true_a sense_n 8._o the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la not_o devise_v by_o we_o to_o corrupt_v the_o father_n 9_o no_o disagreement_n among_o catholic_n in_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n 10._o catholic_n have_v infallible_a faith_n of_o what_o they_o believe_v either_o explicit_o or_o implicit_o but_o protestant_n none_o at_o all_o that_o be_v infallible_a 1._o the_o controversy_n go_v on_o touch_v roman-catholiques_a salvation_n the_o bishop_n have_v first_o yield_v 1._o absolute_o that_o the_o lady_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o roman_a faith_n nettle_v a_o little_a as_o it_o seem_v by_o mr._n fisher_n bid_v her_o mark_n that_o return_v smart_o upon_o he_o in_o these_o word_n she_o may_v be_v better_o save_v in_o it_o than_o you_o and_o bid_v he_o mark_v that_o too_o well_o we_o will_v not_o interpret_v this_o to_o be_v any_o restrain_v of_o his_o former_a grant_n touch_v the_o lady_n salvation_n but_o only_o a_o item_n to_o his_o adversary_n to_o look_v to_o himself_o for_o that_o in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n his_o case_n be_v not_o so_o good_a as_o the_o lady_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n but_o what_o be_v his_o reason_n because_o for_o sooth_n any_o man_n that_o know_v so_o much_o of_o the_o truth_n as_o mr._n fisher_n and_o other_o of_o his_o call_n do_v and_o yet_o oppose_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o great_a danger_n so_o that_o it_o seem_v learning_n and_o sufficiency_n according_a to_o the_o bishop_n have_v such_o a_o connexion_n with_o protestant_a doctrine_n that_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d easy_a matter_n to_o have_v the_o one_o and_o not_o to_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o other_o but_o how_o false_a this_o surmise_n be_v appear_v by_o the_o experience_n of_o so_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o discover_v error_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o truth_n in_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n that_o the_o more_o learned_a they_o be_v and_o the_o better_a they_o understand_v and_o weigh_v the_o ground_n of_o controversy_n betwixt_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o her_o adversary_n the_o more_o they_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n again_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o by_o ponder_v the_o pretend_a reason_n of_o protestant_n for_o their_o religion_n i_o shall_v ever_o come_v to_o a_o right_n and_o full_a understanding_n of_o divine_a truth_n see_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o follow_v their_o principle_n i_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o nothing_o that_o belong_v to_o divine_a faith_n for_o teach_v as_o they_o do_v that_o all_o particular_a man_n all_o general_n council_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n may_v err_v what_o assurance_n can_v they_o give_v i_o that_o either_o their_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v true_a or_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n by_o which_o they_o prove_v their_o doctrine_n be_v such_o as_o they_o understand_v or_o that_o their_o church_n which_o they_o grant_v to_o be_v fallible_a do_v not_o err_v in_o those_o point_n wherein_o they_o disagree_v from_o us._n ibidem_fw-la what_o he_o assert_v afterward_o by_o way_n of_o reason_n why_o he_o allow_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o roman_a catholic_n viz._n because_o they_o be_v within_o the_o church_n and_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v say_v simple_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v baptise_a and_o hold_n the_o foundation_n be_v a_o paradox_n and_o may_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a even_o from_o his_o own_o ground_n for_o see_v he_o have_v often_o deliver_v that_o by_o foundation_n he_o understand_v only_o such_o point_n as_o be_v prime_a radical_a and_o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o express_o believe_v by_o all_o christian_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n and_o see_v that_o many_o heretic_n be_v baptise_a and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n in_o this_o sense_n what_o do_v he_o but_o bring_v into_o the_o fold_n of_o the_o church_n and_o make_v member_n of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n most_o of_o the_o heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v and_o that_o even_o while_o they_o remain_v most_o notorious_o and_o actual_o divide_v from_o it_o nor_o be_v he_o content_a with_o one_o absurdity_n unless_o he_o adjoine_v a_o second_o ibidem_fw-la there_o be_v no_o question_n say_v he_o but_o many_o viz._n ignorant_a catholic_n be_v save_v in_o the_o corrupt_a time_n of_o the_o church_n when_o their_o leader_n unless_o they_o repent_v before_o their_o death_n as_o it_o be_v moral_o certain_a none_o of_o they_o do_v be_v lose_v see_v here_o a_o heavy_a doom_n pronounce_v against_o all_o the_o roman_a doctor_n in_o general_n but_o what_o be_v they_o all_o lose_v who_o repent_v not_o of_o those_o pretend_a error_n which_o as_o pastor_n of_o the_o roman-catholique_a church_n they_o teach_v so_o many_o year_n together_o how_o can_v that_o be_v be_v they_o not_o all_o even_o by_o the_o bishop_n own_o principle_n member_n of_o the_o true_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o those_o error_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o be_v baptise_a and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n if_o they_o neither_o lose_v that_o faith_n by_o which_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n nor_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v teach_v any_o false_a doctrine_n against_o their_o conscience_n by_o mean_n ibidem_fw-la whereof_o they_o may_v fall_v from_o grace_n with_o what_o truth_n or_o charity_n can_v the_o bishop_n pronounce_v such_o a_o sentence_n against_o they_o he_o add_v that_o erroneous_a leader_n do_v then_o only_o perish_v when_o they_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n instruction_n or_o to_o use_v all_o the_o mean_n they_o can_v to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n but_o i_o demand_v if_o no_o misleader_n but_o such_o do_v perish_v with_o what_o countenance_n conscience_n i_o may_v say_v can_v the_o relatour_n pass_v his_o judgement_n of_o we_o in_o the_o manner_n he_o do_v that_o they_o be_v lose_v can_v it_o with_o any_o colour_n of_o equity_n or_o truth_n be_v charge_v upon_o they_o that_o they_o refuse_v the_o church_n instruction_n what_o visible_a church_n be_v there_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n together_o by_o which_o have_v they_o be_v never_o so_o willing_a they_o can_v be_v instruct_v to_o teach_v otherwise_o than_o themselves_o teach_v in_o their_o respective_a age_n and_o what_o other_o mean_n can_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o use_v more_o than_o they_o do_v to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n why_o shall_v not_o our_o adversary_n in_o reason_n have_v rather_o excuse_v 〈◊〉_d these_o leader_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n from_o heresy_n and_o all_o other_o damnable_a error_n than_o he_o do_v even_o st._n cyprian_n himself_o and_o his_o follower_n see_v it_o be_v manifest_a these_o last_o oppose_v and_o contradict_v the_o more_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n whereas_o the_o roman_a catholic_a doctor_n have_v always_o the_o universal_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n on_o their_o side_n in_o the_o point_n now_o controvert_v and_o for_o which_o protestant_n condemn_v they_o of_o error_n the_o truth_n be_v the_o bishop_n be_v a_o little_a entangle_v here_o something_o he_o must_v say_v by_o way_n of_o threaten_v against_o catholic_n to_o keep_v his_o own_o people_n in_o awe_n and_o to_o fright_v they_o from_o become_v catholic_n but_o positive_o and_o determinate_o what_o
to_o say_v he_o be_v scarce_o provide_v he_o give_v a_o hint_n at_o the_o difference_n between_o error_n and_o heresy_n but_o dare_v not_o so_o much_o as_o apply_v the_o distinction_n for_o fear_v he_o shall_v be_v force_v either_o to_o acquit_v our_o leader_n too_o manifest_o or_o otherwise_o pass_v such_o a_o censure_n upon_o they_o as_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o maintain_v but_o the_o wary_a reader_n will_v easy_o discover_v by_o his_o timorousness_n and_o hesitancy_n here_o his_o uncharitable_a temerity_n and_o forwardness_n in_o the_o precedent_a passage_n he_o tell_v we_o likewise_o that_o a_o teach_a heretic_n if_o he_o add_v schism_n to_o his_o heresy_n be_v lose_v very_o good_a we_o grant_v it_o no_o less_o willing_o then_o himself_o but_o wonder_v his_o lordship_n will_v not_o first_o make_v it_o clear_a that_o our_o teacher_n add_v schism_n and_o obstinacy_n to_o their_o error_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o call_v they_o before_o he_o give_v sentence_n upon_o their_o person_n by_o say_v that_o they_o be_v lose_v but_o that_o which_o he_o add_v concern_v st._n cyprian_n and_o his_o follower_n give_v a_o plain_a advantage_n against_o he_o and_o his_o follower_n namely_o to_o prove_v that_o all_o leader_n of_o protestant_a religion_n be_v guilty_a both_o of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n and_o by_o consequence_n liable_a to_o damnation_n except_o they_o repent_v st._n cyprian_n he_o say_v be_v a_o main_a leader_n in_o the_o error_n of_o rebaptisation_n yet_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n grant_v he_o safe_a and_o his_o follower_n only_a that_o be_v after_o he_o in_o danger_n of_o damnation_n and_o why_o this_o but_o only_o because_o st._n cyprian_n do_v not_o refuse_v the_o church_n instruction_n do_v not_o obstinate_o and_o formal_o oppose_v the_o church_n authority_n which_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o define_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n but_o after_o the_o church_n determination_n those_o that_o follow_v st._n cyprian_n error_n and_o mislead_v the_o people_n be_v judge_v both_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n and_o that_o just_o too_o by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n and_o so_o by_o consequence_n be_v lose_v without_o repentance_n but_o be_v not_o this_o a_o convince_a instance_n against_o luther_n calvin_n and_o all_o other_o ringleader_n of_o the_o protestant_a profession_n do_v it_o not_o evident_o prove_v they_o also_o to_o be_v both_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n do_v not_o they_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n instruction_n as_o much_o as_o any_o of_o those_o post-nate_a follower_n of_o st._n cyprian_n do_v be_v not_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o what_o these_o protestant_a leader_n teach_v as_o much_o and_o as_o solemn_o define_v by_o the_o church_n as_o that_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o error_n of_o rebaptisation_n it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o if_o st._n cyprian_n follower_n be_v just_o account_v heretic_n and_o in_o danger_n of_o damnation_n for_o not_o hear_v the_o church_n instruction_n give_v they_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o for_o teach_v contrary_a to_o what_o the_o church_n have_v solemn_o define_v and_o declare_v as_o by_o the_o bishop_n own_o discourse_n they_o be_v neither_o luther_n nor_o calvin_n nor_o any_o that_o succeed_v they_o in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o profession_n can_v be_v just_o acquit_v of_o the_o like_a crime_n if_o you_o answer_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n condemn_v the_o error_n of_o rebaptisation_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n be_v condemn_v only_o by_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n i_o ask_v what_o you_o mean_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n if_o all_o such_o people_n and_o all_o such_o particular_a church_n as_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o hold_v all_o fundadamentall_a point_n in_o protestant_a sense_n that_o will_v comprehend_v the_o rebaptiser_n themselves_o or_o those_o follower_n of_o st._n cyprian_n error_n who_o the_o bishop_n here_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v heretic_n for_o doubtless_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o hold_v all_o point_n which_o according_a to_o the_o relatour_n principle_n can_v be_v account_v fundamental_a or_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n otherwise_o st._n cyprian_n himself_o have_v err_v in_o a_o point_n fundamental_a therefore_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o that_o sense_n do_v not_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o rebaptisation_n and_o to_o say_v it_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o any_o other_o limit_a sense_n make_v it_o in_o effect_n but_o a_o particular_a church_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o also_o according_a to_o the_o bishop_n doctrine_n no_o less_o fallible_a and_o subject_a to_o error_n in_o define_v unfundamentall_a point_n as_o this_o of_o rebaptisation_n be_v then_o be_v the_o church_n which_o condemn_v protestant_n doctrine_n whatsoever_o church_n that_o be_v beside_o how_o often_o shall_v we_o be_v force_v to_o remind_v our_o adversary_n that_o when_o luther_n first_o begin_v to_o oppose_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o protestant_a doctrine_n concern_v real_a presence_n invocation_n of_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a two_o sacrament_n only_o etc_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o general_n belief_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n whereof_o the_o far_o great_a part_n also_o be_v such_o as_o profess_a obedience_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n 2._o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d paragraph_n be_v take_v up_o 37._o with_o personal_a matter_n and_o matter_n of_o fact_n viz._n what_o a._n c._n what_o doctor_n white_a and_o the_o bishop_n in_o their_o respective_a conference_n with_o mr._n fisher_n say_v in_o which_o kind_n of_o difference_n i_o shall_v not_o interpose_v that_o which_o i_o shall_v observe_v here_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n formalize_v without_o cause_n upon_o those_o word_n of_o a._n c._n different_a from_o the_o roman_a which_o he_o use_v pag._n 67._o where_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o doctor_n white_a express_o grant_v that_o he_o can_v assign_v no_o church_n different_n from_o the_o roman_z which_o in_o all_o age_n hold_v all_o fundamental_a point_n the_o relatour_n will_v not_o seem_v to_o understand_v what_o a._n c._n 4._o mean_n by_o a_o church_n different_a from_o the_o roman_a whether_o he_o mean_v different_a in_o place_n or_o different_a in_o doctrine_n whereas_o if_o he_o have_v peruse_v never_o so_o little_a doctor_n whites_n answer_n where_o it_o be_v first_o report_v pag._n 22._o he_o will_v have_v find_v in_o express_a term_n different_a in_o doctrine_n twice_o over_o for_o fail_v beside_o the_o very_a acception_n wherein_o a._n c._n in_o that_o place_n take_v the_o word_n roman_n church_n towitt_n for_o the_o whole_a visible_a catholic_a church_n evince_n that_o he_o can_v not_o mean_v any_o church_n different_a from_o it_o in_o place_n see_v the_o roman_a church_n in_o that_o sense_n comprehend_v all_o place_n in_o christendom_n and_o all_o particular_a true_a church_n throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n nor_o can_v it_o with_o truth_n be_v avouch_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v ever_o hold_v and_o teach_v the_o foundation_n in_o all_o age_n as_o the_o bishop_n pretend_v see_v all_o or_o most_o of_o those_o primitive_a heresy_n arianisme_n eunomianisme_n nestorianisme_n eutychianisme_n etc_n have_v be_v ancient_o embrace_v and_o profess_v respective_o by_o the_o greek_a patriarch_n and_o their_o church_n at_o some_o time_n or_o other_o neither_o do_v even_o the_o present_a greek_a church_n hold_v and_o teach_v it_o so_o entire_o and_o sound_o as_o it_o ought_v even_o by_o the_o relatour_n own_o 24._o confession_n touch_v their_o error_n about_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n last_o we_o have_v prove_v chap._n 1._o of_o this_o treatise_n that_o the_o greek_n error_n in_o that_o point_n be_v fundamental_a and_o sufficient_a to_o unchurch_n they_o by_o a_o church_n different_a from_o the_o roman_a then_o the_o relatour_n shall_v have_v here_o understand_v without_o make_v any_o scruple_n about_o it_o a_o church_n different_a from_o she_o not_o in_o place_n but_o in_o doctrine_n and_o differ_v also_o not_o in_o point_n fundamental_a only_o which_o be_v a_o other_o scruple_n too_o as_o needless_o add_v but_o in_o point_v not_o fundamental_a also_o in_o protestant_a sense_n that_o be_v a_o church_n differ_v from_o the_o roman_a in_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o teach_v or_o in_o any_o of_o those_o point_n which_o protestant_n reject_v and_o for_o which_o they_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o we_o say_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o mr._n fisher_n demand_v to_o doctor_n white_a and_o consequent_o must_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o doctor_n whites_n answer_v and_o concession_n to_o he_o viz._n that_o no_o church_n differ_v in_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n what_o ever_o fundamental_a or_o not-fundamentall_a from_o the_o present_a roman_a can_v be_v assign_v which_o hold_v in_o all_o age_n all_o fundamental_a point_n and_o
question_n for_o none_o of_o we_o ever_o yet_o grant_v he_o that_o there_o be_v such_o light_n but_o also_o contrary_a to_o experience_n there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o mere_o by_o read_v such_o book_n as_o be_v call_v canonical_a and_o other_o that_o be_v account_v apocryphal_a can_v come_v to_o know_v which_o be_v canonical_a which_o not_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o example_n not_o only_o of_o such_o as_o be_v never_o teach_v the_o maxim_n of_o christian_a religion_n but_o also_o of_o many_o christian_n who_o though_o they_o be_v able_a to_o read_v yet_o be_v never_o teach_v which_o book_n be_v apocryphal_a which_o not_o know_v they_o not_o by_o read_v whence_o it_o follow_v likewise_o that_o all_o the_o ensue_a discourse_n which_o the_o bishop_n make_v touch_v his_o infallible_a belief_n of_o scripture_n fall_v to_o nothing_o see_v what_o he_o lay_v as_o its_o principal_a foundation_n apparent_o sink_v under_o the_o weight_n for_o a_o meerly-humane_a and_o infallible_a assurance_n will_v never_o support_v a_o infallible_a faith_n of_o scripture_n as_o 6._o even_o our_o adversary_n himself_o grant_v nor_o can_v he_o in_o any_o better_a sort_n make_v good_a what_o he_o affirm_n concern_v the_o creed_n and_o four_o first_o general_n council_n namely_o that_o he_o believe_v they_o infallible_o in_o their_o true_a incorrupted_a sense_n and_o know_v that_o he_o believe_v they_o so_o in_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o see_v he_o have_v no_o infallible_a certainty_n that_o the_o word_n or_o text_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n or_o the_o book_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v not_o be_v corrupt_v how_o can_v he_o have_v infallibility_n in_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o they_o and_o their_o conformity_n to_o scripture_n he_o pretend_v indeed_o to_o be_v sure_a that_o he_o believe_v scripture_n and_o the_o creed_n in_o the_o same_o incorrupted_a sense_n in_o which_o the_o primitrue_n church_n believe_v ibidem_fw-la they_o because_o he_o cross_v not_o in_o his_o beleese_n any_o thing_n delever_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o this_o again_o he_o be_v sure_a of_o because_o he_o take_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o it_o be_v express_v and_o deliver_v by_o the_o council_n and_o ancient_a father_n of_o those_o time_n but_o how_o true_a this_o be_v and_o how_o sincere_o he_o take_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o it_o be_v express_a by_o father_n and_o council_n may_v appear_v to_o any_o that_o due_o consider_v by_o the_o testimony_n we_o have_v already_o allege_v against_o he_o upon_o several_a occasion_n out_o of_o the_o council_n and_o father_n particular_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n and_o shall_v yet_o further_o allege_v in_o those_o which_o follow_v a._n c._n ask_v again_o what_o text_n of_o scripture_n assure_v we_o that_o protestant_n now_o living_n do_v believe_v all_o this_o to_o wit_n the_o scripture_n 〈◊〉_d creed_n and_o four_o first_o general_n council_n in_o their_o incorrupted_a sense_n or_o that_o all_o this_o viz._n all_o that_o protestant_n take_v to_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n creed_n and_o four_o first_o general_n council_n be_v express_v in_o those_o particular_a bibles_n or_o in_o the_o act_n of_o council_n or_o write_n of_o the_o primitive_a father_n which_o be_v now_o in_o the_o protestant_n band_n and_o at_o this_o his_o lordship_n will_v needs_o seem_v to_o wonder_v but_o let_v they_o wonder_v that_o will_n the_o query_n will_v ever_o be_v find_v both_o rational_a and_o pertinent_a notwithstanding_o such_o wonder_v for_o can_v any_o man_n deny_v but_o this_o be_v a_o good_a consequence_n protestant_n admit_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o only_a infallible_a rule_n of_o faith_n therefore_o they_o can_v believe_v infallible_o all_o this_o above_o mention_v without_o some_o particular_a text_n or_o text_n of_o sripture_n to_o be_v show_v for_o it_o and_o have_v not_o a._n c._n just_a cause_n to_o ask_v whether_o all_o this_o be_v express_v in_o the_o bibles_n which_o be_v now_o in_o protestant_n hand_n for_o see_v it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o bible_n if_o it_o be_v not_o likewise_o in_o they_o it_o will_v be_v ibidem_fw-la i_o hope_v sufficient_o evidence_v to_o a_o reasonable_a adversary_n that_o it_o can_v be_v find_v in_o none_o but_o say_v he_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o this_o shall_v be_v show_v by_o any_o particular_a text_n because_o it_o be_v make_v plain_o before_o how_o we_o believe_v scripture_n to_o be_v scripture_n and_o by_o divine_a and_o infallible_a faith_n too_o and_o yet_o we_o can_v show_v no_o particular_a text_n for_o it_o but_o how_o we_o pray_v be_v this_o make_v plain_a he_o tell_v we_o indeed_o that_o he_o believe_v the_o entire_a scripture_n first_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n then_o by_o other_o credible_a motive_n last_o by_o the_o light_n of_o scripture_n it_o self_n but_o the_o two_o first_o of_o these_o be_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n of_o no_o infallible_a authority_n and_o the_o three_o in_o effect_n no_o more_o than_o the_o private_a spirit_n as_o we_o have_v often_o demonstrate_v to_o he_o but_o admit_v the_o bishop_n be_v sure_a that_o the_o primitive_a church_n expound_v scripture_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o protestant_n believe_v it_o yet_o how_o will_v he_o be_v able_a to_o make_v good_a what_o he_o add_v stand_v to_o his_o own_o principle_n this_o rule_n mean_v the_o scripture_n as_o expound_v 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o primitive_a church_n can_v never_o deceive_v i_o do_v christ_n promise_v infallibility_n to_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o not_o to_o the_o succeed_a church_n and_o if_o no_o such_o infallibility_n be_v promise_v or_o signify_v in_o scripture_n how_o can_v he_o be_v certain_a they_o can_v not_o err_v or_o deceive_v he_o in_o their_o exposition_n 7._o the_o bishop_n tell_v we_o they_o have_v the_o same_o bible_n with_o we_o but_o i_o see_v not_o how_o this_o can_v be_v affirm_v with_o any_o truth_n for_o protestant_n ibidem_fw-la both_o leave_v out_o many_o book_n which_o we_o esteem_v part_n of_o our_o bible_n and_o those_o which_o they_o have_v with_o we_o be_v corrupt_v both_o in_o original_n and_o translation_n neither_o do_v they_o admit_v and_o receive_v the_o bible_n upon_o the_o same_o motive_n or_o reason_n that_o we_o do_v we_o admit_v it_o for_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n propound_v it_o to_o we_o as_o a_o divine_a book_n which_o infallible_a authority_n protestant_n deny_v and_o by_o consequence_n see_v they_o assign_v no_o other_o in_o lieu_n of_o it_o can_v in_o reason_n be_v so_o infallible_o sure_a of_o their_o bible_n as_o we_o be_v of_o we_o much_o less_o can_v the_o bishop_n just_o say_v that_o all_o be_v express_v in_o their_o bibles_n that_o be_v in_o we_o upon_o this_o ground_n only_o because_o all_o fundamental_a point_n be_v as_o provable_a without_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la as_o with_o it_o for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v affirm_v with_o exclusion_n of_o diverse_a other_o book_n admit_v into_o the_o protestant_n canon_n no_o less_o than_o we_o for_o example_n the_o epistle_n of_o st._n jude_n the_o two_o last_o epistle_n of_o st._n john_n the_o epistle_n to_o philemon_n the_o book_n of_o ester_n ruth_n paralipomena_fw-la yea_o perhaps_o all_o or_o very_o many_o of_o the_o small_a prophet_n it_o be_v scarce_o credible_a the_o relatour_n or_o any_o other_o protestant_n shall_v maintain_v there_o be_v any_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o sense_n to_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o those_o book_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o any_o other_o book_n or_o part_n of_o scripture_n so_o that_o if_o this_o reason_n be_v good_a a_o heretic_n that_o reject_v upon_o the_o matter_n one_o 〈◊〉_d or_o one_o three_o part_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n shall_v yet_o be_v allow_v to_o pretend_v that_o he_o have_v the_o same_o bible_n with_o catholic_n and_o deliver_v to_o he_o by_o the_o same_o hand_n and_o that_o all_o be_v express_v in_o his_o that_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a bible_n sure_o with_o very_a much_o truth_n and_o modesty_n we_o agree_v with_o bellarmin_n that_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n speak_v proper_o be_v reveal_v only_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_a or_o unwritten_a 8._o but_o we_o aver_v that_o they_o be_v infallible_o declare_v and_o testify_v to_o we_o to_o be_v so_o reueay_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o general_n council_n nor_o do_v st._n augustine_n text_n against_o maximinus_n the_o arian_n any_o way_n cross_v or_o prejudice_n our_o 〈◊〉_d although_o it_o be_v manifest_a 14._o he_o speak_v there_o 〈◊〉_d by_o way_n of_o condescension_n and_o voluntary_a yield_v to_o his_o adversary_n and_o not_o as_o force_v there_o to_o by_o any_o necessity_n of_o reason_n st._n
austin_n know_v that_o maximinus_n refuse_v though_o very_o unjust_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a as_o much_o as_o himself_o do_v that_o of_o arimini_fw-la 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o may_v dispute_v effectual_o with_o he_o he_o think_v fit_a for_o the_o present_a to_o wave_n the_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o council_n and_o to_o urge_v he_o only_o with_o such_o common_a principle_n as_o be_v admit_v by_o they_o both_o such_o as_o be_v chief_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o yet_o not_o they_o alone_o for_o it_o be_v evident_a he_o use_v other_o reason_n against_o he_o beside_o scripture_n found_v upon_o and_o deduce_v from_o such_o maxim_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o be_v not_o disow_v by_o his_o adversary_n and_o may_v not_o i_o pray_v any_o catholic_a disputant_n at_o this_o day_n argue_v with_o a_o protestant_n in_o some_o particular_a question_n only_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o tell_v he_o in_o these_o or_o the_o like_a word_n i_o will_v not_o urge_v you_o with_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n or_o trent_n i_o will_v convince_v you_o of_o error_n by_o scripture_n only_o yea_o by_o your_o own_o bible_n etc_o may_v not_o i_o say_v a_o catholic_a in_o some_o case_n speak_v thus_o to_o a_o protestant_n but_o he_o shall_v be_v think_v present_o to_o rerect_v the_o authority_n of_o those_o council_n or_o to_o esteem_v they_o not_o infallible_a in_o their_o definition_n of_o faith_n 8._o the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la i_o confess_v be_v through_o misunderstanding_n such_o a_o common_a stumbling-blocke_n with_o all_o sort_n of_o protestant_n that_o we_o do_v not_o much_o wonder_n the_o bishop_n himself_o shall_v trip_v at_o it_o as_o he_o do_v here_o oblique_o and_o by_o way_n of_o insinuation_n at_o least_o accuse_v we_o of_o have_v expunge_v some_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o true_a and_o authentical_a write_n of_o the_o father_n a_o heavy_a charge_n doubtless_o but_o our_o comfort_n be_v no_o less_o injurious_o impute_v then_o heavy_a for_o how_o do_v he_o prove_v it_o what_o author_n or_o place_n of_o author_n do_v he_o allege_v thus_o expunge_v by_o we_o why_o name_v he_o not_o the_o index_n in_o which_o such_o expunction_n be_v register_v why_o cite_v he_o not_o some_o of_o his_o pure_a and_o more_o authentic_a copy_n different_a from_o we_o and_o where_o those_o text_n be_v restore_v or_o stand_v upon_o record_n which_o our_o index_n be_v pretend_v to_o have_v expunge_v how_o come_v 〈◊〉_d to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a genuine_a and_o authentical_a thenticall_a writing_n of_o the_o father_n if_o they_o be_v not_o so_o extant_a and_o preserve_v among_o we_o and_o by_o we_o of_o any_o thing_n to_o this_o purpose_n which_o yet_o alone_o can_v be_v to_o purpose_n in_o the_o present_a case_n the_o relatour_n bring_v not_o the_o least_o syllable_n of_o instance_n think_v it_o enough_o only_o to_o accuse_v for_o as_o to_o what_o he_o pretend_v to_o allege_v out_o of_o sixtus_n senensis_n his_o epistle_n to_o pope_n pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la whoever_o observe_v it_o well_o will_v find_v it_o real_o to_o speak_v the_o clean_a contrary_n to_o what_o the_o bishop_n will_v seem_v to_o prove_v by_o it_o and_o direct_o to_o accuse_v not_o we_o but_o protestant_n of_o corrupt_v the_o work_n of_o the_o father_n the_o reader_n may_v see_v the_o whole_a text_n here_o in_o sunct_n the_o margin_n at_o large_a whereof_o the_o bishop_n think_v not_o good_a to_o give_v we_o so_o much_o as_o one_o word_n but_o only_o to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o author_n name_n and_o thereby_o clear_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o purge_v the_o ancient_a text_n of_o the_o father_n writing_n but_o only_o the_o false_a reading_n spurious_a note_n commentary_n and_o interpretation_n of_o heretic_n upon_o their_o say_a write_n and_o text_n that_o the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la be_v command_v to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la while_o he_o be_v yet_o cardinal_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o holy_a inquisition_n not_o to_o speak_v of_o their_o alike_o false_a and_o corrupt_a translation_n of_o they_o which_o be_v also_o forbid_v i_o say_v therefore_o let_v all_o our_o jndices_fw-la expurgatorij_fw-la pass_v the_o sorutiny_n even_o of_o our_o most_o rigid_a adversary_n and_o let_v they_o show_v we_o if_o they_o can_v wherein_o any_o authentical_a write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v be_v either_o purge_v or_o clip_v by_o we_o or_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o text_n alter_v in_o point_n of_o read_v but_o upon_o iustifyable_a and_o avow_a reason_n namely_o the_o authority_n of_o some_o more_o ancient_a and_o better_a copy_n and_o if_o they_o can_v let_v they_o here_o after_o for_o shame_n at_o least_o be_v silent_a and_o object_v the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la no_o more_o a._n c._n ask_v further_a whether_o protestant_n be_v infallible_o sure_a that_o 7._o they_o right_o understand_v the_o sense_n of_o all_o that_o be_v express_v in_o their_o book_n according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o the_o father_n that_o be_v present_a at_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n and_o for_o this_o the_o bishop_n find_v great_a fault_n with_o he_o as_o ask_v the_o same_o thing_n over_o and_o over_o again_o we_o answer_v first_o his_o lordship_n may_v see_v by_o this_o how_o earnest_a a._n c._n be_v for_o a_o direct_a and_o punctual_a answer_n to_o his_o query_n second_o the_o relatour_n shall_v have_v reflect_v that_o as_o yet_o a._n c._n have_v receive_v no_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o the_o demand_n and_o till_o satisfaction_n be_v give_v in_o such_o case_n it_o be_v consonant_a enough_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o argue_v to_o repeat_v and_o urge_v the_o demand_n and_o to_o do_v otherwise_o be_v but_o to_o run_v from_o one_o thing_n to_o a_o other_o without_o end_n and_o never_o sift_v out_o the_o certain_a truth_n in_o any_o question_n whatsoever_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o query_n be_v such_o that_o it_o will_v be_v matter_n of_o everia_a vexation_n to_o all_o that_o follow_v or_o go_v about_o to_o defend_v the_o bishop_n assertion_n it_o be_v evident_o impossible_a to_o give_v a_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o it_o without_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o catholic_n do_v when_o the_o like_a demand_n be_v make_v to_o we_o by_o our_o adversary_n the_o relatour_n indeed_o out_o of_o his_o wont_a liberality_n in_o this_o kind_n be_v please_v to_o call_v it_o a_o dry_a shift_n but_o the_o reason_n he_o give_v be_v no_o better_o than_o a_o gross_a mistake_n for_o the_o church_n authority_n do_v not_o always_o beget_v a_o implicit_a faith_n as_o the_o relatour_n think_v but_o very_o often_o a_o explicit_a one_o to_o wit_n when_o either_o the_o definition_n itself_o expound_v to_o i_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o that_o church-tradition_n concern_v it_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o it_o need_v not_o the_o definition_n or_o declaration_n of_o a_o council_n to_o make_v it_o certain_o know_v whersore_fw-la see_v general_n council_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o already-proued_a infallibility_n be_v always_o to_o be_v presume_v to_o speak_v in_o that_o sense_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v also_o a_o infallible_a witness_n of_o that_o doctrine_n we_o catholic_n do_v evident_o show_v according_a to_o our_o ground_n how_o we_o be_v infallible_o sure_a that_o we_o understand_v the_o text_n of_o our_o bible_n conformable_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o four_o first_o general_n council_n and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o their_o time_n for_o why_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v necessary_o involue_v in_o that_o of_o the_o council_n and_o if_o there_o happen_v to_o be_v obscurity_n in_o the_o word_n of_o any_o council_n by_o be_v infallible_o sure_a that_o that_o only_o can_v be_v their_o sense_n which_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o present_a church-tradition_n and_o that_o the_o opposite_a sense_n can_v possible_o be_v they_o however_o the_o word_n themselves_o may_v perhaps_o be_v wrest_v to_o it_o by_o consequence_n we_o be_v infallible_o sure_a that_o we_o understand_v scripture_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n now_o which_o the_o say_a general_n council_n and_o primitive_a church_n ancient_o do_v to_o wit_n by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n i_o answer_v to_o a._n cs._n four_o jnterrogatorie_n which_o be_v whether_o protestant_n can_v be_v infallible_o sure_a that_o all_o and_o only_o those_o point_n which_o they_o count_v fundamental_a and_o necessary_a to_o be_v express_o know_v by_o all_o 8._o be_v so_o account_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o bishop_n will_v seem_v at_o last_o to_o tell_v we_o which_o point_n be_v fundamental_a and_o
he_o do_v say_v and_o with_o truth_n can_v say_v no_o more_o stand_v to_o his_o own_o principle_n 10._o the_o implicit_a faith_n of_o catholic_n at_o which_o the_o relatour_n again_o glance_v in_o point_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o know_v only_o implicit_o give_v they_o sufficient_a infallibility_n in_o their_o faith_n but_o have_v no_o place_n in_o this_o present_a debate_n for_o we_o now_o treat_v only_o 2._o of_o such_o point_n as_o be_v fundamental_a quoad_fw-la rem_fw-la attestatam_fw-la as_o we_o have_v former_o distinguish_v they_o that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n they_o contain_v such_o as_o be_v the_o prime_n radical_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o every_o one_o be_v oblige_v necessitate_v medij_fw-la or_o praecepti_fw-la to_o know_v express_o in_o so_o much_o that_o where_o ignorance_n of_o these_o point_n be_v culpable_a and_o through_o our_o own_o default_n we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v that_o implicit_a faith_n can_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o attain_n of_o salvation_n that_o we_o teach_v the_o clean_a contrary_n assert_v likewise_o that_o in_o those_o of_o the_o first_o kind_n viz._n which_o be_v necessary_a by_o necessity_n of_o mean_n even_o invincible_a ignorance_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n so_o little_a cause_n in_o truth_n have_v the_o bishop_n to_o tell_v we_o by_o way_n of_o irony_n and_o scoff_n that_o a_o roman-catholique_a may_v use_v implicit_a faith_n at_o pleasure_n as_o to_o his_o carp_n at_o the_o word_n know_v use_v by_o a._n c._n the_o relatour_n shall_v have_v know_v that_o his_o adversary_n take_v it_o not_o in_o the_o most_o proper_a sense_n for_o demonstrative_a or_o scientifical_a knowledge_n as_o some_o speak_v but_o only_a for_o certain_a assurance_n and_o for_o infallible_a belief_n as_o it_o be_v frequent_o take_v by_o other_o but_o as_o for_o protestant_n stand_v to_o the_o bishop_n ground_n it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v have_v infallible_a faith_n either_o explicit_a or_o implicit_a of_o any_o thing_n they_o bleeve_v because_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v in_o his_o opinion_n fallible_a they_o can_v never_o by_o force_n thereof_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o it_o commend_v be_v all_o or_o any_o of_o they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n make_v either_o by_o the_o church_n or_o any_o private_a man_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v not_o infallible_o certain_a of_o this_o it_o may_v happen_v for_o aught_o he_o know_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o some_o of_o they_o may_v prove_v not_o to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o see_v the_o church_n authority_n atte_v they_o all_o alike_o he_o may_v if_o he_o please_v conceive_v a_o like_a fear_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o what_o he_o further_o add_v in_o this_o page_n viz._n 337._o be_v only_o matter_n of_o reference_n to_o what_o himself_o have_v former_o deliver_v so_o as_o i_o think_v it_o also_o sufficient_a to_o refer_v my_o reader_n to_o what_o i_o have_v 10._o answer_v in_o those_o place_n viz._n §_o 25._o num_fw-la 3._o §_o 33._o consid._n 3._o num_fw-la 1._o §_o 21._o num_fw-la 1._o but_o i_o can_v sufficient_o wonder_v to_o hear_v he_o affirm_v here_o that_o he_o hold_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o infallible_a as_o a._n c._n do_v this_o sure_o must_v be_v account_v a_o paradox_n or_o nothing_o can_v be_v just_o take_v for_o such_o for_o be_v not_o the_o great_a part_n of_o this_o comerence_n spend_v in_o debate_v the_o difference_n between_o himself_o and_o a._n c._n toutch_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o do_v not_o the_o bishop_n all_o along_o profess_o sustain_v and_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o she_o be_v fallible_a both_o in_o the_o delivery_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o define_n of_o all_o point_n in_o his_o opinion_n not-fundamentall_a and_o also_o in_o her_o tradition_n even_a immemoriall_n and_o universal_a and_o do_v not_o a._n c._n in_o direct_a opposition_n to_o he_o maintain_v and_o assert_v the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o all_o these_o but_o i_o wonder_v yet_o more_o at_o the_o proof_n he_o bring_v for_o this_o assertion_n to_o wit_n his_o refer_v we_o to_o §_o 21._o num_fw-la 5._o of_o his_o own_o book_n for_o there_o pag._n 139._o he_o express_o limit_n the_o church_n infallibility_n to_o absolute_a fundamental_a doctrine_n which_o a._n c._n never_o do_v and_o in_o the_o progress_n of_o his_o discourse_n explicate_v the_o say_a infallibility_n even_o in_o fundamental_n too_o he_o fall_v so_o low_a and_o attribute_n so_o small_a a_o portion_n thereof_o to_o the_o church_n that_o he_o bring_v it_o down_o at_o last_o to_o this_o pitiful_a state_n and_o if_o she_o err_v say_v he_o in_o some_o one_o or_o more_o fundamental_a point_n she_o may_v be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n still_o but_o not_o holy_a etc_o be_v this_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o 141._o catholic_a church_n as_o infallible_a as_o a._n c._n do_v not_o to_o urge_v here_o the_o dangerous_a consequence_n and_o also_o involue_v implicancy_n of_o the_o assertion_n itself_o 11._o which_o i_o have_v already_o note_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o that_o place_n the_o rest_n of_o this_o paragraph_n be_v spend_v only_o in_o repeat_v objection_n which_o have_v be_v more_o than_o once_o sufficient_o answer_v viz._n concern_v transubstantiation_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_n etc_n wherein_o we_o can_v think_v our_o self_n oblige_v to_o follow_v our_o adversary_n example_n but_o rather_o to_o remit_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o 24._o place_n where_o we_o have_v already_o give_v satisfaction_n touch_v those_o matter_n as_o little_a notice_n shall_v we_o take_v of_o his_o object_v again_o to_o we_o the_o doctrine_n of_o depose_v and_o kill_v of_o king_n this_o be_v add_v to_o invenome_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o argument_n which_o he_o know_v otherwise_o will_v not_o be_v mortal_a to_o us._n we_o hope_v our_o demeanour_n in_o these_o late_a dismal_a distract_a time_n of_o trial_n have_v sufficient_o clear_v we_o from_o all_o such_o aspersion_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o indifferent_a person_n nay_o indeed_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o our_o great_a enemy_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o under_o the_o late_a usurp_a power_n the_o great_a crime_n lay_v to_o our_o charge_n be_v our_o loyalty_n and_o fidelity_n to_o our_o sovereign_n in_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v hold_v by_o all_o that_o party_n a_o thing_n almost_o impossible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o professed_a catholic_n and_o not_o a_o cavalier_n too_o but_o to_o this_o objection_n we_o have_v likewise_o 21._o already_o speak_v what_o may_v suffice_v to_o sum_n up_o all_o in_o brief_a we_o utter_o renounce_v all_o doctrine_n and_o opinion_n whatsoever_o prejudicial_a unto_o or_o destructive_a of_o that_o loyal_a obedience_n and_o fidelity_n which_o be_v due_a to_o all_o sovereign_a prince_n and_o magistrate_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n have_v perchance_o drop_v srom_o the_o pen_n of_o any_o of_o we_o we_o own_v it_o not_o but_o censure_v it_o deep_o prohibit_v it_o strict_o and_o in_o case_n it_o be_v obstinate_o maintain_v punish_v it_o severe_o and_o last_o command_v all_o book_n to_o be_v correct_v that_o contain_v any_o such_o doctrine_n chap._n 25._o a_o further_a prosecution_n of_o the_o point_n touch_v the_o unchangedness_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n with_o a_o defence_n of_o purgatory_n argument_n 1._o a._n c._n argument_n that_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v still_o the_o one_o save_v catholiqve_n faith_n make_v good_a 2._o the_o word_n of_o st._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n quam_fw-la nisi_fw-la cuique_fw-la integram_fw-la jnviolatamqve_fw-la seruaverit_fw-la etc_n vindicate_v from_o the_o bishop_n gloss._n 3_o the_o bishop_n distinguish_v betwixt_o not-beleeving_a the_o creed_n in_o its_o true_a sense_n and_o force_v a_o wrong_a sense_n upon_o it_o vain_a and_o impertinent_a 4._o protestant_n be_v chooser_n in_o point_n of_o belief_n no_o less_o than_o all_o other_o heretic_n 5._o they_o be_v not_o guide_v by_o the_o church_n further_o than_o they_o please_v themselves_o 6._o church-infallibility_a to_o what_o it_o amount_v according_a to_o the_o bishop_n measure_n 7._o in_o what_o sense_n general_n council_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v infallible_a even_o a_o part_n antè_fw-la or_o at_o first_o sit_v down_o 8._o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n general_o speak_v believe_v purgatory_n 9_o prayer_n for_o dead_a as_o use_v by_o the_o ancient_n necessary_o infer_v purgatory_n 10._o the_o relatour_n labour_v in_o vain_a to_o avoid_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n in_o this_o point_n 11._o st._n gregory_n nyssen_n and_o theodoret_n even_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n clear_a for_o purgatory_n 12._o st._n austin_n not_o waver_v
so_o use_v as_o here_o it_o be_v but_o that_o protestant_n as_o well_v as_o we_o must_v be_v suppose_v good_a catholic_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v clear_a enough_o a._n c._n mean_v only_o this_o that_o protestant_n in_o some_o thing_n believe_v the_o same_o truth_n with_o other_o people_n who_o be_v good_a catholic_n which_o be_v very_o true_a but_o far_o from_o imply_v that_o confession_n which_o the_o bishop_n will_v infer_v from_o he_o however_o i_o think_v not_o the_o matter_n worth_n stand_v upon_o the_o bishop_n himself_o acknowledge_v a._n c._n intend_a 〈◊〉_d to_o call_v they_o catholic_n and_o if_o unaware_o some_o thing_n slip_v from_o his_o pen_n whereby_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o call_v they_o so_o what_o matter_n be_v it_o see_v it_o be_v incident_a even_o to_o the_o best_a author_n sometime_o to_o let_v fall_v a_o improper_a expression_n 5._o to_o as_o little_a purpose_n be_v it_o for_o he_o to_o tell_v we_o that_o next_o to_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o god_n word_n protestant_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o ibidem_fw-la church_n for_o as_o we_o say_v before_o so_o far_o as_o they_o please_v they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o church_n and_o where_o they_o chink_n good_a they_o leave_v she_o we_o entreat_v our_o adversanes_n to_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o follow_v their_o own_o fancy_n and_o the_o fallible_a authority_n of_o humane_a deduction_n in_o believe_v matter_n of_o faith_n both_o which_o the_o bishop_n do_v so_o express_o disclaim_v in_o this_o place_n to_o what_o a._n c._n add_v that_o by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n he_o understand_v here_o man_n infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o lawfully-called_n continue_v and_o confirm_v general_n council_n the_o relatour_n answer_v according_a to_o his_o wont_a dialect_n that_o he_o make_v no_o doubt_n the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n be_v infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n so_o that_o it_o can_v by_o any_o error_n fall_v away_o total_o from_o christ_n the_o foundation_n the_o whole_a church_n can_v do_v thus_o sure_o his_o kindness_n be_v great_a and_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v much_o oblige_v to_o he_o for_o allow_v she_o such_o a_o large_a prerogative_n and_o portion_n of_o infallibility_n as_o that_o of_o necessity_n some_o one_o person_n or_o other_o must_v still_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o church_n believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n or_o if_o that_o be_v too_o much_o at_o least_o all_o fundamental_a point_n in_o protestant_a sense_n for_o so_o long_o as_o but_o two_o or_o three_o person_n hold_v all_o such_o point_n it_o will_v be_v true_a that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v not_o by_o any_o error_n total_o sallen_v away_o from_o christ_n the_o foundation_n all_o the_o lawful_a pastcur_n of_o the_o church_n may_v in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n err_v every_o man_n of_o they_o and_o fall_v away_o even_o from_o christ_n the_o foundation_n yea_o draw_v all_o their_o people_n to_o hell_n with_o they_o without_o any_o prejudice_n to_o the_o promise_n which_o christ_n make_v to_o his_o church_n if_o but_o two_o or_o three_o poor_a soul_n be_v still_o find_v who_o god_n preserve_v from_o such_o error_n as_o our_o adversary_n call_v fundamental_a all_o be_v well_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n do_v not_o prevail_v over_o christ_n church_n though_o every_o particular_a christian_a save_v only_o some_o few_o in_o a_o age_n perish_v by_o heresy_n the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o teach_v the_o church_n all_o necessary_a truth_n notwithstanding_o that_o in_o all_o age_n and_o time_n of_o the_o church_n he_o suffer_v such_o a_o universal_a deluge_n of_o all_o damn_v and_o soule-destroying_a error_n as_o this_o to_o overspread_v the_o whole_a face_n of_o christendom_n 6._o this_o be_v the_o infallibility_n our_o adversary_n grant_v the_o whole_a but_o a._n cs._n word_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n assistance_n in_o lawfully-called_n continue_v and_o confirm_v general_n council_n oblige_v the_o bishop_n some_o what_o further_a to_o declare_v himself_o in_o that_o point_n ibidem_fw-la wherein_o though_o we_o sufficient_o know_v his_o mind_n already_o yet_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o hear_v he_o speak_v he_o utter_o deny_v therefore_o and_o that_o twice_o over_o for_o fail_v that_o general_n council_n be_v they_o never_o so_o lawful_o call_v continue_v and_o confirm_v have_v any_o infallible_a assistance_n but_o may_v err_v in_o their_o determination_n of_o faith_n whether_o they_o can_v or_o no_o have_v be_v already_o sufficient_o 20._o handle_v and_o the_o relatours_n assertion_n confute_v so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o repeat_v what_o have_v be_v say_v all_o that_o i_o shall_v desire_v of_o the_o reader_n here_o be_v that_o from_o this_o and_o the_o former_a passage_n of_o the_o bishop_n he_o will_v take_v a_o right_a measure_n of_o his_o judgement_n and_o of_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o his_o follower_n in_o this_o main_a point_n concern_v the_o church_n authority_n and_o to_o reflect_v how_o much_o they_o do_v in_o reality_n attribute_v to_o it_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o hear_v indeed_o to_o speak_v fair_a word_n and_o to_o profess_v great_a respect_n to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o council_n especial_o such_o as_o be_v general_n and_o ecumenical_a pretend_v at_o least_o to_o refuse_v none_o but_o for_o some_o manifest_a defect_n or_o faultiness_n as_o that_o they_o be_v not_o true_o or_o full_o general_n or_o do_v not_o observe_v legal_a and_o warrantable_a proceed_n in_o their_o debate_n etc_n but_o let_v they_o give_v never_o such_o goodly_a word_n let_v they_o counterfeit_a jacob_n voice_n never_o so_o much_o here_o be_v the_o touchstone_n of_o their_o judgement_n and_o inward_a sense_n whatsoever_o they_o say_v this_o they_o all_o hold_v general_n council_n how_o lawfullysoever_o and_o how_o lawful_o and_o warrantable_o soever_o proceed_v have_v no_o infallible_a assistance_n from_o god_n but_o may_v err_v and_o that_o universal_o too_o for_o so_o he_o mean_v as_o we_o have_v 〈◊〉_d already_o prove_v that_o be_v in_o all_o matter_n and_o point_n whatsoever_o fundamental_a or_o not-fundamentall_a but_o you_o will_v reply_v the_o bishop_n grant_v infallibility_n to_o a_o general_n council_n to_o wit_n de_fw-fr post_fw-la facto_fw-la as_o his_o word_n be_v after_o it_o be_v end_v and_o admit_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n i_o answer_v this_o be_v to_o give_v as_o much_o infallibility_n to_o a_o general_n council_n as_o be_v due_a to_o the_o mean_a society_n or_o company_n of_o christian_n that_o be_v for_o while_o they_o judge_v that_o to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n which_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o receive_v for_o such_o by_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o in_o this_o sense_n infallible_a and_o can_v no_o more_o be_v deceive_v or_o deceive_v other_o in_o that_o particular_a judgement_n than_o a_o general_n council_n or_o then_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v true_a in_o it_o self_n and_o also_o find_v to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v be_v false_a in_o this_o indeed_o the_o relatour_n be_v just_a as_o liberal_a now_o to_o a_o general_n council_n as_o he_o be_v former_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o 5._o grant_v it_o not_o to_o err_v while_o it_o err_v not_o the_o truth_n be_v he_o vain_o trifle_n in_o the_o whole_a business_n and_o dally_v with_o the_o reader_n by_o obtrude_a upon_o he_o a_o grammatical_a or_o at_o best_o but_o a_o logical_a notion_n or_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n infallible_a in_o stead_n of_o the_o theological_a for_o how_o i_o pray_v or_o in_o what_o sense_n be_v a_o general_n council_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o relatour_n to_o be_v infallible_a even_o the_o post_n facto_fw-la after_o it_o be_v end_v and_o as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o confirm_v by_o the_o church_n acceptance_n certain_o if_o you_o mark_v it_o no_o otherwise_o than_o every_o true_a proposition_n be_v or_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v infallible_a that_o be_v hipothetical_o and_o upon_o supposition_n only_o for_o sure_o no_o true_a proposition_n quâ_fw-la talis_fw-la or_o so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v suppose_v or_o know_v to_o be_v true_a though_o but_o by_o some_o one_o person_n can_v deceive_v any_o man_n or_o possible_o be_v false_a in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v a_o know_a maxim_n in_o logic_n quicquid_fw-la est_fw-la quando_fw-la est_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la esse_fw-la every_o thing_n that_o be_v have_v a_o hypotheticall_a necessity_n and_o infallibility_n of_o be_v since_o it_o can_v but_o be_v so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v and_o be_v it_o not_o think_v you_o a_o worthy_a prerogative_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v thus_o infallible_a in_o her_o definition_n do_v not_o the_o bishop_n assign_v a_o very_a worthy_a and_o fit_a mean_n to_o apply_v divine_a revelation_n to_o we_o in_o order_n to_o the_o
two_o a._n c._n can_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o real_o it_o be_v intend_v and_o must_v necessary_o be_v include_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n how_o shall_v they_o preach_v etc_o no_o less_o than_o the_o former_a i_o say_v that_o special_a annunciation_n or_o preach_v of_o christian_a doctrine_n must_v necessary_o be_v include_v in_o the_o latitude_n of_o those_o word_n whereby_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n do_v sufficient_o apply_v divine_a revelation_n to_o christian_a people_n for_o the_o ground_v and_o elicit_v a_o assent_n of_o true_a divine_a faith_n which_o as_o we_o have_v often_o show_v can_v be_v do_v by_o any_o authority_n or_o mean_n which_o be_v not_o infallible_a a._n c._n therefore_o take_v not_o the_o whole_a but_o only_o the_o principal_a part_n or_o one_o principal_a kind_n of_o preach_v christ_n gospel_n when_o he_o so_o gloss_v upon_o st._n paul_n word_n and_o well_o may_v he_o so_o do_v it_o be_v that_o without_o which_o the_o preach_n of_o all_o particular_a pastor_n to_o their_o particular_a flock_n will_v be_v to_o little_a purpose_n for_o they_o can_v preach_v nothing_o but_o uncertainty_n or_o at_o best_o but_o probable_a ibidem_fw-la doctrine_n as_o little_a cause_n have_v his_o lordship_n to_o tax_v a._n c._n of_o brag_a because_o he_o averr_v that_o we_o catholic_n use_v to_o interpret_v scripture_n by_o union_n consent_n of_o father_n and_o definition_n of_o council_n for_o in_o a_o just_a and_o true_a sense_n so_o we_o do_v in_o as_o much_o as_o we_o never_o decline_v but_o always_o follow_v that_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n which_o have_v consent_n of_o father_n and_o the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n can_v protestant_n say_v so_o much_o for_o themselves_o and_o yet_o our_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o no_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n be_v good_a but_o what_o have_v express_v consent_n of_o father_n or_o the_o definition_n of_o some_o general_n council_n to_o back_o it_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o even_o private_a person_n may_v discourse_v upon_o scripture_n and_o declare_v their_o judgement_n concern_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o it_o provide_v they_o neither_o hold_v nor_o obtrude_v any_o sense_n contrary_a to_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o father_n or_o the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n but_o hold_v and_o do_v all_o thing_n with_o due_a submission_n to_o the_o church_n but_o the_o relatour_n will_v prove_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o scotus_n and_o canus_n cite_v in_o his_o margin_n that_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n speak_v not_o at_o all_o of_o infuse_v that_o be_v of_o divine_a and_o infallible_a faith_n but_o ibidem_fw-la of_o faith_n acquit_v a_o to_o wit_n by_o natural_a and_o humane_a industry_n and_o mean_n which_o be_v not_o infallible_a nor_o require_v any_o infallible_a authority_n in_o they_o that_o preach_v it_o the_o bishop_n thence_o conclude_v that_o a._n c_o '_o gloss_n be_v not_o good_a but_o rather_o that_o he_o gross_o abuse_v the_o text_n by_o it_o i_o answer_v first_o the_o precedent_a discourse_n and_o reason_n give_v for_o the_o gloss_n do_v sufficient_o discharge_v a._n c._n of_o that_o imputation_n leave_v the_o note_n of_o a_o precipitate_v censure_n upon_o his_o adversary_n second_o i_o say_v the_o bishop_n information_n abuse_v he_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n or_o syllable_n unicâ_fw-la in_o scotus_n which_o deny_v infuse_v that_o be_v supernatural_a divine_a true_a christian_n and_o infallible_a faith_n to_o be_v understand_v in_o that_o tex_v of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v true_a scotus_n allege_v the_o word_n in_o particular_a proof_n of_o faith_n acquire_v viz._n of_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v gain_v by_o hear_v of_o particular_a preacher_n and_o depend_v only_o on_o their_o authority_n but_o yet_o he_o there_o maintain_v with_o all_o divine_n a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o faith_n infuse_v or_o supernatural_a which_o as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o here_o prove_v out_o of_o canus_n must_v rest_v upon_o some_o infallible_a motive_n and_o consequent_o require_v a_o infallible_a preach_n to_o apply_v it_o sufficient_o to_o we_o which_o be_v all_o that_o a._n c_o '_o gloss_n import_v add_v hereunto_o that_o acquire_v faith_n be_v according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o god_n providence_n prerequire_v and_o antecedent_n to_o faith_n divine_a and_o supernatural_a as_o tersiuni_fw-la canus_n likewise_o here_o teach_v it_o can_v in_o any_o sort_n be_v suppose_v to_o exclude_v it_o last_o by_o a_o argument_n a_fw-fr fortiori_fw-la it_o be_v evident_o conclude_v that_o the_o text_n ought_v to_o be_v extend_v to_o divine_a and_o infallible_a faith_n as_o well_o as_o to_o humane_a and_o acquire_v for_o if_o we_o can_v believe_v even_o with_o natural_a and_o acquire_v faith_n without_o a_o preacher_n sure_o much_o less_o can_v we_o believe_v with_o infuse_v and_o supernatural_a faith_n without_o one_o still_o speak_v according_a to_o ordinary_a course_n which_o preacher_n must_v also_o be_v infallible_a either_o in_o his_o own_o person_n as_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v or_o as_o he_o deliver_v the_o doctrine_n and_o perform_v the_o office_n commit_v to_o he_o by_o a_o infallible_a authority_n such_o as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o church_n by_o who_o every_o particular_a preacher_n be_v depute_v to_o deliver_v the_o doctrine_n which_o she_o hold_v i_o may_v urge_v also_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o interpreter_n who_o expound_v the_o place_n of_o no_o other_o faith_n but_o that_o by_o which_o christian_n be_v iustify_v and_o save_v which_o sure_o can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o supernatural_a and_o infuse_a faith_n and_o this_o be_v most_o certain_a whatever_o 1._o biel_n out_o of_o his_o private_a opinion_n assert_n to_o the_o contrary_n but_o we_o have_v stand_v long_o upon_o this_o subject_n than_o the_o small_a importance_n of_o it_o require_v since_o neither_o our_o nor_o a._n c_o '_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n do_v at_o all_o depend_v upon_o this_o text_n but_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v by_o those_o other_o 20._o already_o allege_v to_o that_o purpose_n 3._o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o next_o place_n tell_v a._n c._n he_o have_v ill_a luck_n in_o 20._o fit_v his_o conclusion_n to_o his_o premise_n and_o his_o consequent_a to_o his_o antecedent_n the_o business_n be_v because_o he_o seem_v from_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o infer_v infallibility_n but_o i_o answer_v our_o adversary_n have_v not_o much_o better_a luck_n so_o often_o to_o mistake_v and_o pervert_v a._n c_o '_o meaning_n for_o certain_o a._n c._n do_v not_o deduce_v infallibility_n either_o of_o church_n or_o council_n from_o any_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whatsoever_o but_o from_o such_o assistance_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o both_o and_o from_o thence_o infallibility_n be_v right_o and_o invincible_o conclude_v as_o we_o have_v often_o show_v by_o the_o grand_a inconueniency_n which_o otherwise_o will_v avoidable_o follow_v both_o to_o religion_n and_o the_o church_n what_o therefore_o he_o urge_v that_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n and_o father_n of_o the_o church_n be_v assist_v by_o god_n spirit_n and_o yet_o not_o hold_v to_o be_v of_o infallible_a credit_n be_v beside_o the_o purpose_n a._n c._n make_v no_o such_o inference_n as_o the_o relatour_n by_o this_o objection_n suppose_v he_o to_o do_v as_o for_o the_o question_n which_o a._n c._n ask_v if_o a_o whole_a general_n council_n define_v what_o be_v divine_a truth_n be_v not_o of_o infallible_a credit_n what_o man_n in_o the_o world_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v infallible_a the_o ibidem_fw-la bishop_n seem_v rather_o to_o slight_v then_o satisfy_v it_o when_o he_o say_v i_o will_v make_v you_o a_o ready_a answer_n no_o man_n no_o not_o the_o pope_n himself_o no._n let_v god_n and_o his_o word_n be_v true_a and_o every_o man_n a_o liar_n cite_v scripture_n for_o it_o rom._n 3._o 4._o but_o what_o can_v god_n word_n be_v true_a unless_o the_o pope_n and_o general_n council_n be_v hold_v fallible_a and_o subject_a to_o err_v when_o they_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n true_a when_o both_o himself_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow-apostle_n live_v upon_o earth_n and_o be_v infallible_a and_o if_o they_o be_v true_a then_o why_o not_o also_o now_o though_o the_o pope_n and_o general_n council_n be_v hold_v infallible_a certain_o a._n cs._n question_v deserve_v a_o better_a answer_n than_o this_o or_o rather_o be_v unanswerable_a by_o the_o bishop_n without_o desert_v his_o avow_a principle_n for_o thus_o i_o argue_v ex_fw-la concessis_fw-la if_o general_n council_n define_v what_o be_v divine_a truth_n be_v not_o of_o infallible_a credit_n no_o man_n nor_o man_n in_o the_o world_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v so_o this_o the_o bishop_n grant_v but_o then_o
erect_v into_o a_o patriarchate_n or_o after_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n ecclesiastical_a 〈◊〉_d over_o all_o part_n and_o province_n of_o christendom_n the_o last_o chapter_n several_a other_o mistake_v of_o the_o bishop_n with_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a work_n argument_n 1._o st._n cyprian_n text_n epist._n 45._o ad_fw-la cornelium_n touch_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a church_n vindicate_v from_o 27._o the_o bishop_n perversion_n 2._o all_o charche_n in_o st._n cyprian_n bpiniony_n one_o by_o communion_n with_o that_o of_o rome_n 3._o tertullian_n of_o the_o same_o sentiment_n with_o st._n cyprian_n 4._o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d betwixt_o the_o essence_n and_o existence_n of_o the_o church_n not_o pertinent_a 5._o his_o 〈◊〉_d touch_v the_o lady_n go_v to_o church_n so_o persuade_v in_o conscience_n as_o she_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 6._o go_v to_o protestant_a church_n in_o england_n never_o hold_v by_o lawful_a catholic_n 7._o the_o heretic_n badge_n viz._n pride_n and_o presumption_n of_o one_o proper_a judgement_n not_o well_o put_v off_o by_o the_o bishop_n 8._o the_o same_o charge_n can_v be_v retort_v upon_o catholic_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 9_o catholic_n maintain_v the_o same_o succession_n to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o the_o father_n do_v viz._n the_o joint-succession_n of_o person_n and_o doctrine_n 10._o stapleton_n not_o contrary_a to_o this_o nor_o to_o himself_o whatever_o be_v pretend_v by_o the_o bishop_n 11._o temporary_a contestation_n about_o the_o papacy_n no_o interruption_n of_o the_o lawful_a succession_n of_o pope_n 12._o the_o bishop_n stand_v to_o his_o principle_n can_v rid_v himself_o of_o a._n c._n dilemma_n viz._n of_o make_v 〈◊〉_d no_o judge_n at_o all_o or_o every_o man_n judge_n for_o himself_o in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n 13._o infallibility_n the_o true_a foundation_n loath_a of_o church_n and_o religion_n with_o the_o author_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o prayer_n for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o bishop_n have_v still_o a_o pieque_fw-la against_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v ever_o willing_a to_o lessen_v as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v the_o respect_n which_o good_a christian_n of_o ancient_a time_n may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v bear_v towards_o that_o sea_n out_o of_o this_o humour_n it_o proceed_v that_o he_o will_v not_o endure_v the_o roman_a sea_n shall_v be_v style_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n catholic_n but_o to_o a_o void_a it_o take_v occasion_n even_o where_o he_o confess_v none_o be_v give_v he_o by_o his_o adversary_n to_o make_v a_o long_a discourse_n of_o no_o less_o than_o eight_o or_o nine_o page_n in_o folio_n only_o upon_o a_o text_n of_o st._n cyprian_a which_o he_o call_v indeed_o a_o difficult_a place_n that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o want_v some_o reason_n for_o his_o tediousness_n but_o i_o presume_v a_o indifferent_a reader_n have_v observe_v the_o text_n and_o well_o weigh_v the_o bishop_n comment_n upon_o it_o will_v judge_v it_o difficult_a in_o no_o other_o sense_n then_o that_o the_o relatour_n find_v it_o somewhat_o a_o hard_a matter_n for_o he_o to_z disguise_z and_o pervert_v it_o from_o its_o true_a sense_n but_o a_o bad_a cause_n will_v plunge_v the_o best_a wit_n sometime_o into_o difficulty_n and_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v our_o adversary_n in_o this_o digtession_n contend_v more_o than_o a_o little_a against_o what_o he_o can_v not_o but_o in_o his_o own_o conscience_n see_v to_o be_v most_o probable_a 1._o for_o first_o as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o story_n the_o occasion_n of_o write_v that_o epistle_n wherein_o st._n cyprian_n be_v by_o we_o suppose_v to_o 〈◊〉_d style_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n catholic_a be_v not_o that_o which_o the_o relatour_n set_v down_o but_o very_o different_a from_o it_o the_o relatour_n tell_v we_o they_o be_v st._n cyprian_n own_v letter_n about_o which_o cornelius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n expostulate_v with_o he_o and_o complain_v that_o they_o be_v not_o direct_v to_o himself_o as_o of_o right_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v but_o to_o the_o roman_a clergy_n whereas_o in_o truth_n st._n cyprian_n and_o his_o colleague_n have_v take_v a_o resolution_n not_o to_o write_v at_o all_o to_o rome_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o schism_n that_o be_v there_o 〈◊〉_d till_o they_o have_v first_o hear_v from_o their_o legate_n the_o dishops_n caldonius_n and_o fertunatus_fw-la who_o they_o have_v send_v on_o purpose_n to_o rome_n to_o know_v the_o true_a state_n of_o affair_n betwixt_o cornelius_n the_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o schismatique_a but_o those_o letter_n be_v write_v by_o certain_a priest_n and_o other_o of_o the_o african_a clergy_n pertain_v to_o the_o diocese_n of_o adrymettium_fw-la where_o st._n cyprian_n happen_v to_o be_v at_o that_o time_n and_o in_o the_o absence_n also_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o place_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o very_a cornel._n word_n of_o the_o epistle_n it_o felse_a nor_o do_v st._n cyprian_n answer_n as_o the_o bishop_n feign_v he_o to_o do_v to_o wit_n as_o own_v or_o acknowledge_v the_o write_n of_o those_o letter_n himself_o or_o that_o they_o be_v send_v with_o his_o knowledge_n but_o profess_v the_o thing_n be_v do_v out_o of_o ignorance_n of_o what_o himself_o and_o colleague_n have_v resolve_v and_o only_o by_o some_o in_o africa_n during_o the_o absence_n of_o their_o bishop_n second_o as_o to_o the_o word_n whereby_o st._n cyprian_n profess_v to_o gornelius_n that_o he_o for_o his_o part_n do_v exhort_v all_o that_o sail_v out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n that_o they_o shall_v acknowledge_v and_o embrace_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o can_v imagine_v any_o other_o thing_n shall_v be_v mean_v by_o they_o but_o that_o he_o exhort_v such_o people_n when_o they_o come_v to_o rome_n that_o they_o shall_v join_v themselves_o to_o the_o party_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o his_o communion_n be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o the_o schismatic_n the_o bishop_n will_v have_v we_o think_v he_o mean_v only_o to_o exhort_v they_o in_o general_a to_o acknowledge_v and_o adhere_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o though_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o it_o may_v be_v in_o some_o sense_n term_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n yet_o sure_o in_o this_o place_n it_o can_v be_v think_v little_o less_o than_o frivolous_a for_o st._n cyprian_a so_o especial_o to_o exhort_v those_o traveller_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o unity_n be_v the_o root_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o what_o satisfaction_n or_o just_a apology_n can_v st._n cyprian_n think_v it_o will_v be_v to_o cornelius_n already_o somewhat_o offend_v with_o he_o though_o by_o mistake_n for_o not_o due_o acknowledge_v his_o authority_n to_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o exhort_v all_o people_n that_o come_v out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n that_o they_o shall_v acknowledge_v unity_n to_o be_v the_o root_n of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o they_o shall_v keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_a without_o specify_v his_o communion_n or_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o particular_a the_o acknowledgement_n then_o of_o the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n which_o st._n cyprian_n here_o mean_v and_o exhort_v good_a christian_n to_o make_v and_o constant_o stand_v to_o when_o they_o come_v to_o rome_n have_v doubtless_o something_o in_o it_o more_o special_a than_o this_o that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o must_v relate_v to_o that_o which_o even_o by_o st._n cyprian_n own_v judgement_n 3._o elsewhere_o deliver_v be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n unity_n to_o wit_n the_o lawful_a successor_n of_o st._n peter_n to_o who_o the_o church_n itself_o owe_v her_o unity_n and_o about_o who_o there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n dispute_v and_o controversy_n and_o a_o doubt_v raise_v among_o christian_n at_o rome_n so_o that_o with_o very_o good_a reason_n st._n cyprian_n may_v exhort_v such_o as_o sail_v 〈◊〉_d to_o adhere_v to_o he_o and_o acknowledge_v he_o as_o be_v indeed_o the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n as_o likewise_o to_o disow_v and_o reject_v the_o party_n they_o shall_v find_v averse_a to_o he_o this_o indeed_o be_v a_o convenient_a subject_n of_o exhortation_n and_o well_o worthy_a of_o st._n cyprian_n charity_n and_o zeal_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v exhort_v they_o to_o any_o thing_n else_o in_o this_o place_n or_o no_o more_o than_o the_o relatour_n will_v seem_v to_o think_v be_v whole_o incredible_a but_o the_o bishop_n conceive_v it_o can_v not_o be_v st._n cyprian_n meaning_n and_o intention_n here_o to_o
that_o by_o so_o do_v they_o do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v procure_v ecclesiam_fw-la alteram_fw-la institui_fw-la the_o form_v 44._o of_o a_o other_o church_n which_o say_v he_o nefas_fw-la est_fw-la nec_fw-la licet_fw-la fieri_fw-la may_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a be_v attempt_v tell_v they_o that_o their_o preceeding_n herein_o be_v contra_fw-la institutionis_fw-la catholicae_fw-la unitatem_fw-la contrary_a to_o that_o unity_n in_o which_o all_o true_a catholic_a christian_n be_v instruct_v by_o the_o very_a principle_n of_o catholic_a religion_n to_o hold_v and_o maintain_v that_o it_o be_v contra_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la semel_fw-la traditum_fw-la divinae_fw-la dispositionis_fw-la &_o catholicae_fw-la unitatis_fw-la against_o that_o order_n or_o authority_n which_o god_n once_o for_o all_o appoint_v in_o his_o church_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o catholic_a unity_n and_o peace_n among_o christian_n likewise_o not_o to_o urge_v that_o in_o other_o place_n also_o st._n cyprian_n do_v in_o effect_n style_v the_o pope_n chair_n the_o centre_n eccl._n from_o whence_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n be_v derive_v that_o the_o primacy_n be_v therefore_o give_v by_o christ_n to_o st._n peter_n that_o there_o may_v be_v one_o church_n and_o one_o chair_n and_o that_o he_o can_v be_v in_o the_o church_n who_o desert_n the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n last_o not_o to_o urge_v the_o confession_n even_o of_o the_o schismatic_n themselves_o some_o of_o they_o at_o least_o voluntary_o yet_o solemn_o make_v when_o they_o return_v to_o the_o pope_n obedience_n ibidem_fw-la whereby_o they_o profess_v that_o as_o god_n be_v one_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n one_o who_o they_o have_v last_o confess_v in_o prison_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n one_o so_o likewise_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o one_o bishop_n viz._n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o who_o obedience_n and_o communion_n they_o then_o return_v what_o be_v all_o these_o testimony_n but_o so_o many_o evident_a conviction_n and_o demonstration_n of_o the_o relatour_n huge_a mistake_n not_o to_o say_v any_o worse_a when_o he_o pretend_v that_o by_o the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n st._n cyprian_n understand_v no_o more_o but_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n nor_o be_v they_o any_o whit_n infringe_v by_o what_o he_o bring_v out_o of_o st._n cyprian_n epistle_n to_o jubaianus_n write_v against_o the_o novatian_n who_o dare_v rebaptize_v catholic_n in_o which_o epistle_n st._n cyprian_n have_v these_o word_n we_o be_v the_o head_n of_o baptism_n what_o make_v this_o against_o we_o for_o first_o the_o bishop_n himself_o acknowledge_v that_o by_o we_o st._n cyprian_n do_v not_o understand_v his_o own_o person_n or_o church_n precise_o but_o include_v all_o other_o particular_a true_a church_n and_o chief_o the_o roman_a where_o novatian_n himself_o be_v baptize_v the_o head_n of_o baptism_n then_o in_o st._n cyprian_n meaning_n be_v all_o true_a church_n as_o they_o stand_v in_o due_a subordination_n and_o communion_n unite_v with_o the_o roman_a and_o not_o otherwise_o which_o we_o willing_o grant_v but_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o from_o hence_o as_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v it_o that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o be_v head_n or_o root_n of_o baptism_n and_o to_o be_v head_n and_o root_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o one_o by_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n may_v proper_o enough_o be_v style_v the_o head_n of_o baptism_n which_o signify_v no_o more_o then_o that_o the_o chief_a and_o ordinary_a power_n of_o baptise_v be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o it_o will_v never_o be_v proper_a to_o say_v the_o church_n be_v the_o head_n and_o root_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o be_v to_o make_v the_o whole_a to_o be_v only_o a_o principal_a part_n which_o be_v absurd_a now_o that_o st._n cyprian_n do_v hold_v all_o true_a church_n to_o be_v one_o by_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o church_n be_v sufficient_o evidence_v by_o what_o be_v above_o say_v nor_o can_v he_o with_o reason_n be_v ibidem_fw-la understand_v in_o any_o other_o sense_n when_o he_o speak_v those_o word_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o period_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n nos_fw-la qui_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la unius_fw-la caput_fw-la et_fw-la radicem_fw-la tenemus_fw-la etc_n for_o as_o by_o ecclesiae_fw-la unius_fw-la it_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o he_o mean_v the_o church_n catholic_a so_o by_o the_o word_n caput_fw-la et_fw-la radicem_fw-la if_o we_o expound_v he_o with_o conformity_n to_o his_o already_o cite_a assertion_n we_o can_v possible_o understand_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o sea_n the_o one_o as_o head_n rule_v and_o command_v by_o authority_n the_o other_o as_o matrix_fw-la by_o communion_n embrace_v and_o comprehend_v all_o true_a christian_n or_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n on_o earth_n beside_o this_o it_o be_v very_o observable_a what_o the_o relatour_n himself_o allege_v and_o conclude_v out_o of_o a_o other_o epistle_n of_o st._n cyprian_n viz._n that_o st._n cyprian_a and_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n send_v their_o legate_n to_o ibidem_fw-la rome_n on_o purpose_n to_o bring_v the_o `_o novatian_n that_o be_v the_o schismatical_a epist._n party_n there_o to_o the_o unity_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a but_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o obstinacy_n and_o stiffness_n of_o those_o schismatic_n their_o labour_n be_v lose_v now_o for_o aught_o appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a by_o the_o say_a epistle_n the_o reduction_n of_o the_o novatian_n to_o the_o church_n unity_n whereof_o by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n st._n cyprian_n there_o speak_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o bring_v they_o to_o obedience_n and_o communion_n with_o cornelius_n the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o relatour_n himself_o also_o intimate_v and_o consequent_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v there_o be_v something_o in_o resist_v and_o oppose_v the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v great_a contrariety_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n than_o there_o be_v in_o resist_v and_o oppose_v any_o other_o particular_a bishop_n and_o if_o it_o be_v otherwise_o why_o shall_v all_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n esteem_v themselves_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n so_o concern_v in_o it_o why_o shall_v they_o send_v bishop_n of_o their_o own_o on_o purpose_n to_o rome_n to_o reduce_v the_o schismatic_n with_o so_o much_o diligence_n and_o care_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o their_o lawful_a bishop_n what_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v of_o this_o but_o that_o they_o foresee_v and_o fear_v that_o if_o a_o schism_n proceed_v there_o the_o whole_a church_n will_v in_o a_o short_a time_n come_v to_o be_v involue_v in_o it_o and_o divide_v into_o two_o several_a party_n by_o acknowledge_v two_o head_n or_o roman_a bishop_n when_o novatus_fw-la set_v up_o maiorinus_n the_o first_o donatist_n bishop_n at_o carthage_n against_o caecilian_a the_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o when_o meletius_n and_o paulinus_n have_v their_o several_a party_n at_o antioch_n likewise_o when_o anthimus_n a_o eutychian_a heretic_n be_v intrude_v into_o the_o sea_n of_o 〈◊〉_d against_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n thereof_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n fear_v as_o break_v the_o general_n unity_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v still_o a_o visible_a and_o certainly-know'n_a head_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_a viz._n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o by_o his_o authority_n keep_v all_o in_o unity_n and_o first_o or_o last_o rectify_v and_o compose_v those_o dissension_n but_o here_o of_o necessity_n it_o will_v have_v be_v otherwise_o for_o the_o breach_n of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n be_v in_o the_o very_a head_n fountain_n and_o root_v thereof_o will_v unless_o prevent_v avoidable_o in_o no_o long_a time_n spread_v itself_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n think_v it_o necessary_a with_o extraordinary_a diligence_n to_o make_v up_o the_o breach_n there_o and_o reduce_v the_o separate_a party_n to_o unity_n 3._o tertullian_n who_o the_o relatour_n also_o cite_v make_v nothing_o against_o us._n for_o he_o only_o affirm_v that_o all_o those_o many_o and_o great_a ibidem_fw-la church_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v that_o one_o church_n which_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o they_o be_v all_o first_o or_o primitive_a 20._o church_n and_o all_o of_o they_o apostolical_a because_o they_o do_v all_o of_o they_o allow_v and_o approve_v one_o unity_n that_o be_v say_v we_o a_o unity_n derive_v from_o one_o and_o centre_v in_o one_o who_o be_v no_o other_o but_o st._n peter_n lawful_a successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o subordination_n unto_o who_o in_o faith_n and_o discipline_n as_o unto_o the_o universal_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n all_o particular_a
church_n be_v make_v one_o and_o do_v in_o effect_n continue_v one_o and_o the_o same_o catholic_a primitive_a and_o apostolical_a church_n or_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n first_o of_o all_o found_v so_o that_o till_o our_o adversary_n either_o disprove_v this_o gloss_n or_o give_v a_o better_a we_o shall_v make_v no_o scruple_n to_o assert_v that_o in_o tertullia_n judgement_n as_o well_o as_o st._n cyprian_n rome_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n may_v well_o be_v term_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o all_o other_o church_n because_o none_o remain_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o by_o unity_n with_o rome_n and_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o nor_o matter_n it_o that_o pamelius_n reckon_v up_o diverse_a church_n ibidem_fw-la which_o he_o call_v original_a and_o mother-churche_n before_o the_o roman_a for_o as_o to_o the_o name_n original_a and_o mother-churche_n we_o have_v give_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o for_o the_o thing_n viz._n that_o he_o reckon_v rome_n in_o the_o last_o place_n as_o if_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o be_v account_v inferior_a to_o those_o other_o we_o answer_v his_o lordship_n will_v never_o have_v make_v this_o observation_n margin_n twice_o have_v he_o first_o consult_v the_o master_n of_o ceremony_n about_o it_o for_o he_o certain_o will_v have_v resolve_v he_o that_o in_o marshal_v dignity_n subordinate_a one_o to_o a_o other_o as_o the_o case_n be_v here_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n mention_v by_o pamelius_n viz._n smyrna_n philippi_n corinth_n ephesus_n be_v subordinate_a to_o rome_n the_o principal_a or_o sovereign_n be_v to_o be_v rank_v in_o the_o last_o place_n do_v pamelius_n or_o tertullian_n himself_o acknowledge_v the_o like_a privilege_n and_o authority_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o belong_v to_o those_o other_o original_a and_o mother-churche_n which_o they_o do_v to_o the_o roman_a as_o for_o that_o irreligious_a act_n of_o the_o emperor_n adrian_n which_o the_o bishop_n mention_n it_o be_v but_o too_o much_o imitate_v by_o protestant_n for_o as_o he_o set_v up_o the_o image_n of_o jupiter_n in_o the_o very_a place_n where_o christ_n suffer_v and_o as_o he_o profane_v bethlehem_n with_o erect_v the_o temple_n of_o adonis_n as_o think_v to_o destroy_v christian_a religion_n by_o lay_v waist_n the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v first_o found_v so_o do_v our_o adversary_n plant_v all_o their_o battery_n against_o rome_n persuade_v themselves_o that_o if_o they_o can_v beat_v down_o that_o chief_a fortress_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o shall_v soon_o destroy_v our_o whole_a church_n but_o as_o that_o heathenish_a emperor_n adrian_n do_v so_o do_v these_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o true_a religion_n they_o labour_v in_o vain_a for_o the_o church_n be_v invincible_a the_o gate_n of_o hell_n itself_o can_v prevail_v against_o she_o and_o 60_o as_o st._n austin_n long_o since_o observe_v all_o heresy_n whatsoever_o do_v indeed_o go_v out_o of_o she_o be_v cut_n off_o from_o she_o as_o unprofitable_a branch_n from_o the_o vine_n but_o the_o church_n herself_o always_o remain_v in_o her_o root_n in_o own_o vine_n in_o her_o own_o charity_n viz._n by_o remain_v always_o unite_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o most_o principal_a and_o proper_a sense_n then_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o only_a be_v both_o the_o rock_n and_o root_n of_o the_o church-catholique_a as_o be_v by_o institution_n and_o appointment_n of_o christ_n principal_o and_o sole_o ordain_v to_o supply_v the_o place_n and_o perform_v the_o office_n both_o of_o rock_n and_o root_n to_o all_o other_o church_n whatsoever_o how_o be_v it_o in_o a_o less_o principal_a and_o limit_a sense_n in_o reference_n to_o particular_n only_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o some_o other_o particular_a church_n or_o church_n beside_o the_o roman_a may_v sometime_o be_v be_v the_o style_n that_o be_v be_v call_v rock_n or_o root_n thus_o for_o example_n we_o confess_v st._n austin_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n style_v the_o eastern_a church_n the_o root_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o african_n 170._o pars_fw-la donati_n non_fw-la consider_v at_o se_fw-fr praecisant_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d radice_n orientalium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la but_o the_o reason_n be_v 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v either_o because_o the_o eastern_a church_n be_v a_o large_a and_o more_o noble_a part_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a than_o the_o african_n be_v or_o because_o the_o african_n first_o receive_v the_o gospel_n from_o they_o as_o st._n austin_n suprâ_fw-la also_o testify_v in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o not_o that_o they_o be_v such_o a_o root_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n as_o kome_n be_v or_o in_o all_o property_n pertain_v to_o a_o root_n equal_a to_o rome_n that_o be_v only_o the_o relatour_n voluntary_a supposition_n and_o mistake_a inference_n 4._o nor_o will_v his_o speculation_n hold_v whereby_o he_o distinguish_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n from_o its_o existence_n and_o make_v that_o unity_n which_o be_v a_o attribute_n of_o ens_fw-la to_o be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n for_o first_o in_o true_a philosophy_n the_o essence_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o real_o 〈◊〉_d from_o its_o existence_n second_o because_o in_o this_o sense_n of_o he_o the_o church_n shall_v rather_o be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o unity_n than_o unity_n the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n for_o unity_n as_o a_o attribute_n flow_v from_o ens_fw-la and_o not_o ens_fw-la from_o it_o as_o like_o wise_a in_o natural_a philosophy_n all_o property_n flow_v from_o their_o subject_n and_o not_o their_o subject_n from_o they_o three_o what_o unity_n do_v our_o adversary_n here_o speak_v of_o when_o he_o tell_v we_o ens_fw-la and_o vnum_fw-la be_v and_o be_v one_o be_v convertible_a this_o be_v metaphysical_a unity_n only_o entitative_a unity_n but_o be_v that_o all_o the_o unity_n the_o bishop_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v necessary_a in_o the_o church_n if_o not_o why_o be_v that_o only_o mention_v here_o and_o no_o other_o christian_n when_o they_o dispute_v and_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n be_v one_o understand_v sure_a a_o further_a unity_n than_o this_o namely_o a_o moral_a unity_n a_o unity_n of_o mind_n and_o judgement_n touch_v the_o veritye_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o not_o only_o a_o unity_n of_o nature_n definition_n and_o essence_n this_o therefore_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o equivocate_v or_o mistake_v 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o business_n but_o we_o pass_v it_o by_o as_o likewise_o we_o do_v the_o remaynder_n of_o the_o paragraph_n as_o be_v farce_v only_o with_o assertion_n without_o prose_n or_o with_o proof_n against_o no_o adversary_n 5._o as_o st._n cyprian_a ought_v to_o be_v commend_v for_o his_o exhort_v those_o who_o cravel_v to_o rome_n to_o acknowledge_v and_o maintain_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a church_n so_o do_v the_o jesuit_n well_o to_o persuade_v the_o lady_n to_o do_v the_o same_o of_o who_o counsel_n 1._o by_o the_o report_n of_o mr._n 〈◊〉_d she_o make_v thus_o far_o good_a use_n that_o upon_o this_o and_o the_o precedent_a conference_n the_o rest_v in_o judgement_n full_o satisfy_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n faith_n yet_o upon_o frailty_n and_o fear_n to_o offend_v the_o king_n she_o yield_v for_o a_o while_n to_o go_v to_o church_n for_o which_o she_o be_v 〈◊〉_d very_o sorry_a the_o relatour_n seem_v willing_a enough_o to_o have_v 〈◊〉_d all_o this_o if_o he_o have_v know_v how_o but_o not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v that_o he_o content_v himself_o to_o 〈◊〉_d it_o as_o suspicious_a and_o 〈◊〉_d as_o he_o can_v 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v so_o or_o no._n he_o 〈◊〉_d not_o 〈◊〉_d that_o honourable_a 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d in_o conscience_n and_o judgement_n nor_o 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v fear_n or_o 〈◊〉_d or_o other_o 〈◊〉_d that_o make_v hor_o yield_v to_o go_v to_o church_n nor_o how_o sorry_a she_o be_v for_o it_o nor_o who_o can_v testify_v that_o sorrow_n the_o bishop_n know_v none_o of_o all_o these_o particular_n well_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o other_o do_v and_o do_v know_v they_o however_o he_o confident_o tell_v we_o the_o lady_n will_v more_o 〈◊〉_d be_v able_a to_o answer_v to_o god_n for_o her_o come_n to_o church_n then_o for_o leave_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o which_o when_o a.c._n take_v modest_a exception_n and_o only_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o neither_o do_v prove_v nor_o can_v prove_v it_o to_o be_v lawful_a for_o one_o especinl_o so_o persuade_v as_o the_o lady_n be_v to_o go_v to_o the_o protestant_a church_n the_o bishop_n sharp_o reply_v there_o be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d deal_v of_o cunning_a and_o as_o much_o malice_n in_o this_o passage_n of_o a._n c._n but_o where_o i_o pray_v 〈◊〉_d either_o the_o
damn_a page_n 336_o heresy_n even_o in_o point_n not-fundamental_a in_o protestant_n sense_n by_o st._n austin_n and_o the_o church_n account_n page_n 17_o pelagian_a heresy_n not_o condemn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n page_n 33_o nor_n in_o any_o other_o general_n council_n acknowledge_v by_o protestant_n ibid._n heresy_n what_o it_o be_v page_n 178_o proper_o speak_v not_o within_o but_o without_o the_o church_n page_n 218_o heretic_n those_o of_o former_a time_n as_o great_a pretender_n to_o scripture_n as_o protestant_n page_n 50_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v keep_v with_o heretic_n the_o constant_a tenet_n of_o all_o catholic_n page_n 152_o jew_n the_o jew_n prove_v the_o old_a testament_n to_o be_v god_n word_n the_o same_o way_n that_o we_o catholic_n do_v the_o new_a page_n 121_o they_o hold_v not_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o their_o sole_a rule_n of_o faith_n page_n 122_o image_n no_o real_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o ancient_n and_o the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n in_o point_n of_o image_n page_n 294_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_n express_o forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n with_o latria_n or_o divine_a worship_n ibid._n etc._n etc._n the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n touch_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n ibid._n the_o church_n have_v do_v what_o in_o she_o lie_v to_o prevent_v abuse_n in_o image-worship_n ibid._n image_n in_o common_a use_n and_o veneration_n among_o christian_n in_o primitive_a time_n page_n 295_o 296_o index_n the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la justify_v against_o the_o bishop_n calumny_n page_n 342_o infallible_a the_o catholic_n church_n prove_v to_o be_v infallible_a by_o the_o same_o mean_n that_o moses_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v prove_v such_o page_n 55_o 56_o 62_o in_o what_o sense_n catholic_n maintain_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n must_v be_v as_o infallible_a as_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a and_o apostolical_a p._n 80_o no_o means_n to_o be_v infallible_o sure_a of_o prime_n apostolical_a tradition_n if_o the_o present_a church_n be_v fallible_a page_n 83_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n to_o have_v power_n to_o determine_v infallible_o as_o well_o not-fundamental_a as_o fundamental_a point_n page_n 385_o infallibility_n whence_o the_o infallibility_n both_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o general_a council_n proceed_v page_n 43_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n prove_v from_o scripture_n page_n 101_o 102_o etc._n etc._n page_n 177_o 178_o 179_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o teach_v be_v right_o infer_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n assistance_n page_n 375_o 376_o intention_n what_o kind_n of_o intention_n in_o the_o priest_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o validity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n page_n 281_o 282_o 283_o no_o real_a inconvenience_n follow_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n touch_v the_o priest_n intention_n page_n 284_o 285_o judge_n our_o adversary_n demand_v of_o a_o three_o person_n to_o be_v judge_n and_o umpire_n betwixt_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o they_o nugatory_n and_o frivolous_a pag._n 157_o 171_o 172_o 173_o the_o notorious_a partiality_n of_o english_a protestant_n prelate_n in_o this_o case_n p._n 174_o general_a council_n by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n the_o best_a judge_n on_o earth_n for_o controversy_n of_o faith_n where_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v doubt_v page_n 213_o a_o visible_a supreme_a live_a judge_n to_o determine_v controversy_n as_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n as_o state_n page_n 219_o legate_n neither_o hosius_n nor_o any_o other_o person_n preside_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o only_o in_o quality_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n page_n 231_o why_o the_o pope_n send_v no_o legate_n to_o the_o second_o council_n at_o constantinople_n page_n 232_o at_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n st._n cyril_n preside_v as_o legate_n to_o pope_n celestin._n ibid._n the_o like_a be_v at_o chalcedon_n and_o other_o general_a council_n ibid._n limbus_n patrum_fw-la the_o father_n general_o teach_v limbus_n patrum_fw-la page_n 336_o literae_fw-la communicatoriae_fw-la the_o literae_fw-la communicatoriae_fw-la by_o who_o first_o ordain_v and_o to_o what_o end_n page_n 220_o they_o evident_o prove_v the_o pope_n authority_n ibid._n the_o difference_n betwixt_o those_o grant_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o those_o grant_v by_o other_o catholic_a bishop_n ibid._n lyturgie_n the_o english_a lyturgie_n why_o unlawful_a to_o be_v use_v by_o catholic_n page_n 319_o manichee_n great_a bragger_n and_o pretender_n to_o truth_n when_o they_o most_o oppose_v it_o page_n 30_o miracle_n none_o ever_o wrought_v in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o present_a canon_n of_o scripture_n either_o protestant_n or_o catholic_a page_n 109_o miracle_n rather_o confirm_v the_o church_n infallibility_n than_o the_o scripture_n page_n 110_o they_o be_v always_o sufficient_o convince_a though_o they_o do_v not_o actual_o convert_v page_n 115_o monarchy_n that_o of_o the_o church_n not_o a_o pure_a but_o mix_v monarchy_n page_n 219_o 224_o monarchy_n acknowledge_v by_o philosopher_n the_o most_o perfect_a form_n of_o government_n page_n 220_o the_o impugn_a monarchical_a government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o what_o it_o tend_v page_n 224_o multitude_n catholic_n make_v not_o multitude_n alone_o any_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n page_n 162_o necessary_a point_n say_v to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n in_o a_o double_a sense_n p._n 15_o 92_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o believe_v scripture_n p._n 91_o 92_o nice_a no_o synod_n hold_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n page_n 237_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a of_o absolute_a authority_n without_o the_o concurrence_n of_o any_o other_o council_n ibid._n the_o council_n of_o sardica_n esteem_v ancient_o but_o a_o appendix_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o the_o reason_n why_o page_n 194_o 195_o the_o probable_a occasion_n of_o pope_n zosimus_n his_o cite_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a for_o that_o of_o sardica_n ibid._n obedience_n no_o external_n obedience_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o definition_n of_o general_a council_n shall_v they_o manifest_o err_v against_o scripture_n and_o demonstration_n page_n 241_o 242_o object_n of_o faith_n material_a and_o formal_a a_o necessary_a distinction_n page_z 15_o 18_o what_o it_o import_v ibid._n patriarch_n in_o point_n of_o authority_n not_o equal_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n p._n 183_o 184_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n head_n and_o prince_n of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n by_o the_o very_a canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a ibid._n the_o pope_n confirmation_n require_v to_o all_o new-elected_n patriarch_n ibid._n eight_o several_a patriarch_n depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n ibid._n other_o patriarch_n restore_v to_o their_o sea_n by_o the_o pope_n authority_n ibid._n st._n peter_n in_o what_o manner_n st._n peter_n represent_v or_o bear_v the_o person_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n when_o he_o receive_v the_o key_n matth._n 16._o 19_o page_n 266_o 267_o christ_n whole_a flock_n more_o absolute_o and_o unlimited_o commit_v to_o st._n peter_n then_o to_o the_o other_o apostle_n page_n 211_o pope_n the_o pope_n authority_n always_o include_v and_o suppose_v in_o that_o of_o the_o church_n pag._n 33_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n not_o necessary_o tie_v to_o the_o particular_a church_n or_o city_n of_o rome_n page_n 132_o catholic_n not_o oblige_v to_o maintain_v the_o pope_n infallible_a save_v only_o with_o a_o general_n council_n page_n 133_o 143_o in_o what_o manner_n the_o pope_n trewhile_o endure_v the_o emperor_n censure_n page_n 192_o the_o pope_n authority_n due_o acknowledge_v will_v effectual_o prevent_v heresy_n and_o preserve_v unity_n in_o the_o church_n page_n 218_o the_o pope_n greatness_n no_o effect_n of_o humane_a policy_n page_n 13_o nor_o of_o his_o residence_n in_o the_o imperial-city_n page_n 192_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n touch_v the_o pope_n authority_n page_n 228_o 229_o the_o pope_n authority_n not_o prejudicial_a to_o that_o of_o temporal_a prince_n p._n 223_o pope_n alexander_n the_o three_o and_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o not_o contrary_a to_o one_o another_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o peter_n lombard_n page_n 279_o pope_n honorius_n not_o real_o guilty_a of_o the_o monothelite_n heresy_n p._n 279_o 280_o priest_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o his_o sanhedrim_n in_o controversy_n concern_v the_o law_n infallible_a under_o the_o old_a testament_n p._n 97_o 123_o prescription_n just_o plead_v by_o catholic_n for_o their_o religion_n not_o so_o by_o protestant_n page_n 333_o 334_o primacy_n primatus_fw-la and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d what_o they_o signify_v especial_o in_o ecclesiastical_a sense_n page_n 200_o primacy_n infer_v supremacy_n and_o belong_v to_o st._n peter_n successor_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d then_o to_o himself_o ibid._n protestant_n neither_o scripture_n nor_o any_o other_o
point_n of_o christian_a religion_n believe_v by_o protestant_n with_o divine_a faith_n page_n 125_o 126_o 127_o 352_o their_o protestation_n at_o auspurgh_n 1529._o direct_o against_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o her_o doctrine_n page_n 146_o 147_o to_o protest_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o manner_n they_o then_o do_v be_v to_o protest_v against_o all_o true_a visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n page_n 147_o protestant_n be_v chooser_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o much_o as_o any_o other_o heretic_n page_n 353_o how_o far_a protestant_n rely_v upon_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n ibid._n why_o unlawful_a for_o catholic_n in_o england_n to_o go_v to_o protestant_a church_n page_n 401_o purgatory_n the_o council_n of_o florence_n unanimous_a in_o define_v the_o point_n of_o purgatory_n page_n 358_o the_o father_n as_o well_o within_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n as_o after_o constant_o teach_v purgatory_n p._n 359_o 360_o 361_o 362_o 363_o 364_o 365_o 366_o 367_o 368_o 369_o no_o real_a difference_n betwixt_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a use_v by_o the_o ancient_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a use_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n at_o present_a p._n 360_o 361_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n in_o proof_n of_o purgatory_n make_v good_a page_n 358_o etc._n etc._n ut_fw-la supra_fw-la purgatory_n right_o esteem_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n page_n 370_o reformation_n always_o and_o profess_o intend_v by_o the_o pope_n themselves_o in_o what_o be_v real_o needful_a p._n 147._o effect_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n ibid._n the_o church_n of_o juda_n no_o pattern_n of_o the_o protestant_n reformation_n p._n 160_o the_o parallel_n for_o they_o hold_v better_a in_o the_o revolt_a tribe_n page_n 161_o sacrilege_n the_o natural_a fruit_n of_o protestant_a reformation_n page_n 170_o regicide_n no_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_n page_n 212_o 348_o resolution_n of_o faith_n how_o catholic_n do_v necessary_o resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o church_n definition_n and_o how_o not_o page_n 58_o 60_o 63._o how_o such_o and_o such_o book_n contain_v in_o the_o bible_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n page_n 59_o 122_o no_o vicious_a circle_n incur_v by_o catholic_n in_o the_o resolution_n of_o their_o faith_n page_n 55_o 62_o 117_o 126_o in_o urge_v the_o circle_n both_o party_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o believe_v scripture_n with_o divine_a and_o infallible_a faith_n page_n 111_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o resolution_n can_v avoid_v the_o circle_n page_n 64_o 111_o revelation_n the_o church_n testimony_n or_o definition_n no_o new_a nor_o immediate_a revelation_n from_o god_n page_n 58_o 65_o divine_a revelation_n the_o only_a formal_a object_n or_o motive_n of_o infallible_a faith_n page_n 59_o safe-conduct_a grant_v two_o way_n jure_fw-la communi_fw-la and_o jure_fw-la speciali_fw-la and_o how_o they_o differ_v page_n 153_o the_o safe-conduct_n grant_v to_o john_n huss_n and_o hierome_n of_o prague_n be_v mere_o jure_fw-la communi_fw-la and_o secure_v they_o only_o against_o unjust_a violence_n ibid._n the_o safe-conduct_a grant_v to_o protestant_n by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v jure_fw-la speciali_fw-la and_o as_o full_a and_o absolute_a as_o themselves_o can_v desire_v or_o the_o council_n grant_v page_n 153_o 154_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n touch_v safe-conduct_n grant_v by_o temporal_a prince_n what_o it_o intend_v page_n 154_o 156_o it_o contain_v nothing_o against_o keep_v faith_n with_o heretic_n ibid._n salvation_n attainable_a in_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o church_n by_o our_o adversary_n own_o confession_n page_n 300_o 301_o etc._n etc._n catholic_a doctor_n in_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o bishop_n own_o ground_n page_n 323_o 324_o the_o roman_a religion_n demonstrate_v to_o be_v a_o more_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n then_o that_o of_o protestant_n page_n 301_o 302_o 303_o 307_o 308_o saint_n invocation_n of_o saint_n no_o error_n in_o faith_n page_n 290_o 291_o the_o father_n teach_v it_o ex_fw-la instituto_fw-la and_o dogmatical_o ibid._n st._n austin_n express_o for_o it_o ibid._n the_o saint_n mediator_n of_o intercession_n not_o of_o redemption_n pag._n 292_o the_o faithful_a under_o the_o old_a testament_n desire_v to_o be_v hear_v for_o the_o merit_n of_o saint_n no_o less_o than_o we_o ibid._n the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n depart_v not_o derogatory_n to_o the_o merit_n or_o intercession_n of_o christ._n page_n 293_o schism_n protestant_n not_o catholic_n make_v the_o present_a schism_n and_o how_o p._n 144_o 145_o 146_o 212_o schism_n at_o rome_n not_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n proper_o speak_v p._n 144_o the_o true_a and_o real_a cause_n of_o protestant_n being-excommunicated_n by_o the_o roman_a church_n page_n 145_o 158_o in_o point_n of_o departure_n as_o well_o as_o other_o circumstance_n the_o parallel_n betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o arian_n hold_v good_a page_n 145_o no_o just_a cause_n assignable_a for_o schism_n page_n 151_o scripture_n not_o believe_v to_o be_v divine_a but_o for_o the_o church_n authority_n p._n 17_o 66_o 67_o scripture_n alone_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o infallible_a assent_n to_o superstructure_n or_o non-fundamental_a point_n contain_v in_o it_o page_n 19_o no_o mean_n of_o infallibly-discerning_a true_a scripture_n from_o false_a unless_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a page_n 85_o in_o what_o case_n it_o be_v both_o lawful_a and_o necessary_a for_o christian_n to_o riquire_v a_o proof_n that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n page_n 118_o scripture_n alone_o in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n the_o whole_a foundation_n of_o divine_a faith_n page_n 116_o in_o what_o sense_n christian_n must_v suppose_v or_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v divine_a or_o god_n word_n page_n 121_o what_o light_v the_o scripture_n must_v have_v to_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v god_n word_n page_n 87_o the_o belief_n of_o scripture_n for_o its_o own_o pretend_a light_n imprudent_a p._n 88_o 89_o 90_o 91_o 116_o 125_o the_o father_n for_o some_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d see_v no_o such_o light_n page_n 70_o 91_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v why_o catholic_n shall_v not_o see_v that_o pretend_a light_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o page_n 90_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a make_v not_o scripture_n their_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n in_o condemn_v the_o arian_n heresy_n page_n 125_o the_o scripture_n prerogative_n above_o the_o church_n page_n 60_o 64_o scripture_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n no_o first_o principle_n p._n 51_o 90_o 114_o 118_o 119_o succession_n st._n james_n not_o successor_n to_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o principality_n of_o his_o church_n page_n 205_o our_o saviour_n prayer_n luc._n 22._o 32._o effectual_o extend_v both_o to_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n page_n 208_o lawful_a pastor_n visible_o succeed_v each_o other_o and_o handing_z down_o the_o same_o unchanged_a doctrine_n from_o christ_n to_o this_o present_a time_n a_o infeparable_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n page_n 410_o 411_o sound_v doctrine_n indivisible_a from_o the_o whole_a lawful_a succession_n ibid._n the_o pope_n succession_n not_o interrupt_v by_o contestation_n about_o the_o papacy_n page_n 412_o 413_o sunday_n that_o sunday_n be_v keep_v holy_a instead_o of_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n a_o apostolical_a tradition_n page_n 67_o synod_n the_o pope_n no_o enemy_n or_o opposer_n of_o national_a synod_n page_n 166_o sundry_a national_a synod_n impertinent_o alled'gd_v by_o the_o bishop_n in_o point_n of_o reformation_n page_n 167_o 168_o 169_o tradition_n not_o know_v but_o for_o and_o by_o the_o church_n authority_n page_n 17_o tradition_n unwritten_a page_n 26_o 67_o what_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v account_v true_o apostolical_a and_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n page_n 66_o etc._n etc._n universal_a tradition_n moral_o speak_v less_o subject_a to_o alteration_n or_o vitiate_a tiate_a than_o scripture_n page_n 98_o church-tradition_n a_o necessary_a condition_n of_o infallible_a belief_n page_n 59_o how_o necessary_a it_o be_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n shall_v be_v infallible_a page_n 126_o transubstantiation_n no_o error_n in_o faith_n page_n 287_o not_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n ibid._n the_o thing_n itself_o always_o believe_v by_o christian_n page_n 288_o evince_v from_o the_o text._n page_n 288_o 289_o trent_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n a_o lawful_a and_o free_a general_n council_n p._n 165_o 229_o nothing_n to_o he_o object_v against_o it_o more_o than_o against_o all_o general_n council_n ibid._n the_o pope_n preside_v therein_o contrary_a to_o no_o law_n divine_a natural_a or_o humane_a but_o his_o undoubted_a right_n page_n 230_o 231_o 232_o the_o pope_n no_o more_o the_o person_n to_o be_v reform_v at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n then_o at_o those_o of_o nice_a and_o chalcedon_n page_n 232_o the_o place_n as_o indifferent_o choose_v for_o
then_o that_o a_o angel_n may_v feel_v taste_n hear_v because_o this_o proposition_n be_v true_a a_o angel_n will_v seel_v taste_n or_o hear_v if_o he_o have_v a_o body_n a_o tongue_n or_o corporal_a ear_n but_o to_o what_o purpose_n do_v the_o bishop_n go_v about_o to_o show_v that_o council_n be_v not_o to_o be_v our_o judge_n in_o point_n that_o be_v clear_o teach_v by_o reason_n or_o scripture_n we_o shall_v never_o have_v recourse_n to_o council_n to_o know_v whether_o the_o whole_a be_v great_a than_o the_o part_n nor_o whether_o jsaac_n have_v two_o son_n jacob_n and_o esau._n neither_o ever_o will_v there_o arise_v any_o case_n in_o which_o all_o wise_a person_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v outward_o profess_v the_o doctrine_n define_v by_o council_n and_o inward_o aslent_a that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o evident_a demonstration_n the_o controversy_n which_o the_o bishop_n shall_v have_v resolve_v be_v this_o whether_o in_o case_n one_o party_n pretend_v and_o very_o believe_v they_o have_v clear_a scripture_n and_o demonstration_n for_o what_o they_o say_v and_o the_o other_o consist_v of_o man_n at_o least_o equal_a if_o not_o superior_a to_o they_o in_o point_n of_o learning_n understand_v moral_a honesty_n prudence_n and_o all_o other_o help_v conduce_v to_o right_a judgement_n shall_v affirm_v the_o contrary_a whether_o in_o this_o case_n there_o be_v not_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o a_o live_n and_o infallible_a judge_n to_o end_v the_o controversy_n and_o whether_o all_o christian_n ought_v not_o to_o submit_v to_o that_o judge_n notwithstanding_o any_o reason_n or_o seem_a evidence_n to_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v strange_a the_o bishop_n shall_v think_v bellarmin_n to_o grant_v that_o a_o private_a man_n may_v lawful_o dissent_v from_o a_o general_n council_n by_o 3._o reason_n of_o some_o manifest_a and_o intolerable_a error_n the_o cardinal_n assert_n indeed_o that_o inferior_n may_v not_o judge_v superior_n whether_o they_o proceed_v lawful_o or_o not_o unless_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o a_o 8._o intolerable_a error_n be_v commit_v by_o they_o but_o there_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o condemn_v our_o saviour_n and_o in_o condemn_v he_o commit_v a_o intolerable_a error_n and_o in_o that_o very_a place_n he_o teach_v that_o the_o council_n of_o the_o jew_n wherein_o the_o high_a priest_n preside_v can_v not_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n but_o that_o after_o his_o birth_n they_o may_v according_a to_o diverse_a prophecy_n he_o there_o allege_v add_v that_o at_o the_o very_a time_n when_o the_o council_n be_v liable_a to_o error_n and_o be_v to_o submit_v to_o their_o superior_n viz._n the_o people_n to_o their_o council_n unless_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o a_o intolerable_a error_n have_v be_v commit_v by_o they_o but_o how_o can_v the_o relatour_n infer_v from_o thence_o that_o such_o a_o error_n may_v be_v commit_v by_o our_o general_n council_n since_o the_o cardinal_n express_o teach_v in_o that_o very_a book_n that_o our_o general_n council_n can_v possible_o err_v in_o their_o definition_n of_o faith_n the_o bishop_n next_o quarrel_n be_v with_o doctor_n stapleton_n for_o teach_v 4._o that_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n in_o general_n council_n be_v divine_a tell_v we_o that_o the_o proposition_n stick_n be_v in_o his_o throat_n as_o if_o the_o doctor_n have_v feel_v some_o check_n in_o the_o utter_n of_o it_o why_o because_o forsooth_o by_o way_n of_o explicate_v himself_o stapleton_n add_v that_o it_o be_v not_o simple_o but_o in_o a_o manner_n divine_a be_v this_o to_o retract_v in_o any_o sort_n what_o he_o have_v say_v who_o see_v not_o rather_o that_o it_o be_v only_a to_o speak_v with_o that_o necessary_a caution_n which_o the_o cause_n require_v and_o which_o the_o cavil_v disposition_n of_o heretic_n do_v particular_o oblige_v we_o to_o this_o proposition_n the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n determine_v in_o general_n council_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n divine_a be_v doubtless_o not_o only_o most_o true_a in_o itself_o but_o also_o most_o consonant_a to_o catholic_a ground_n to_o wit_n as_o express_v that_o it_o be_v not_o god_n immediate_a revelation_n but_o only_o a_o infallible_a mean_n of_o apply_v immediate_a revelation_n to_o we_o his_o next_o objection_n against_o the_o say_a doctor_n be_v blasphemy_n viz._n for_o aucr_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o high_a kind_n than_o scripture_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o have_v diligent_o seek_v for_o the_o word_n allege_v in_o stapletons_n work_n and_o can_v find_v they_o the_o bishop_n quote_v relect._n contr._n 4._o quest_n 4._o art_n 3._o but_o that_o question_n have_v no_o article_n at_o all_o in_o it_o it_o be_v true_a in_o the_o five_o question_n he_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n be_v more_o know_v to_o we_o than_o scripture_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o apply_v to_o we_o both_o scripture_n and_o all_o thing_n else_o that_o we_o believe_v but_o this_o be_v neither_o blasphemy_n nor_o contradiction_n to_o his_o own_o ground_n however_o shall_v any_o such_o proposition_n be_v find_v in_o stapleton_n i_o be_o not_o bind_v to_o maintain_v it_o see_v i_o have_v only_o engage_v to_o defend_v the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o no_o way_n depend_v upon_o any_o such_o assertion_n as_o be_v here_o lay_v to_o stapletons_n charge_n 2._o in_o the_o six_o consideration_n the_o relatour_n argue_v to_o this_o purpose_n if_o a_o general_n council_n be_v infallible_a the_o infallibility_n of_o it_o be_v either_o in_o the_o conclusion_n alone_o or_o in_o the_o mean_n that_o prove_v it_o alone_o 1._o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o premise_n or_o in_o both_o together_o but_o the_o council_n say_v he_o be_v neither_o infallible_a in_o the_o conclusion_n alone_o nor_o in_o the_o mean_n or_o premise_n alone_o nor_o yet_o in_o both_o together_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o infallible_a at_o all_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v brief_a and_o therefore_o not_o stand_v to_o consider_v the_o reason_n why_o he_o think_v it_o be_v not_o infallible_a in_o the_o mean_n we_o answer_v it_o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o conclusion_n that_o be_v in_o the_o doctrine_n define_v though_o it_o be_v not_o infallible_a in_o the_o mean_n or_o argument_n upon_o which_o it_o proceed_v to_o the_o definition_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o one_o viz._n that_o the_o conclusion_n or_o define_v doctrine_n of_o a_o general_n council_n shall_v be_v infallible_o true_a be_v necessary_a for_o the_o due_a government_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o other_o viz._n that_o there_o shall_v be_v infallibility_n also_o in_o the_o mean_n or_o in_o the_o disquisition_n about_o the_o matter_n before_o it_o come_v to_o be_v define_v be_v not_o necessary_a and_o it_o be_v a_o know_a maxim_n deus_fw-la non_fw-la deficit_fw-la in_o necessarijs_fw-la nec_fw-la abundat_fw-la in_o superfluis_fw-la which_o hold_v good_a in_o theology_n as_o well_o as_o in_o nature_n god_n be_v not_o want_v in_o the_o supply_n of_o necessary_n noris_fw-la he_o profuse_a in_o afford_v thing_n superfluous_a to_o this_o our_o adversary_n reply_v that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n altogether_o unknown_a in_o nature_n and_o be_v too_o that_o fallible_a principle_n can_v either_o as_o father_n or_o mother_n beget_v or_o bring_v forth_o a_o infallible_a conclusion_n but_o this_o be_v a_o false_a 2._o supposition_n of_o the_o bishop_n for_o the_o conclusion_n be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o child_n of_o those_o principle_n as_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n direct_v and_o guide_v the_o council_n to_o produce_v a_o infallible_a conclusion_n what_o ever_o the_o premise_n may_v be_v this_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v deny_v unless_o a_o impossibility_n can_v be_v show_v therein_o but_o i_o hope_v no_o man_n will_v attack_v god_n omnipotency_n and_o deprive_v he_o of_o the_o power_n of_o do_v this_o hence_o it_o appear_v how_o vain_o the_o relatour_n fancy_n to_o himself_o that_o stapleton_n and_o all_o catholic_n be_v miserable_o hamper_v in_o this_o argument_n whereas_o they_o all_o easy_o answer_v it_o as_o we_o have_v do_v what_o he_o say_v next_o be_v a_o mere_a perversion_n of_o stapletons_n meaning_n 3._o who_o never_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n be_v simple_o prophetical_a either_o in_o the_o premise_n or_o conclusion_n but_o rather_o the_o quite_o contrary_a as_o the_o relator_n may_v have_v see_v if_o he_o have_v please_v in_o the_o place_n he_o cite_v it_o be_v true_a he_o use_v the_o word_n prophetical_a sometime_o speak_v 2._o of_o the_o conclusion_n or_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n but_o
it_o be_v apparent_a he_o do_v it_o only_o in_o a_o less_o proper_a or_o analogical_a sense_n to_o signify_v that_o by_o virtue_n of_o divine_a assistance_n and_o direction_n such_o a_o conclusion_n or_o definition_n in_o regard_n of_o precise_a verity_n be_v as_o infallible_o true_a and_o certain_a as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o prophecy_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o contrariety_n in_o this_o betweeen_n stapleton_n and_o bellarmin_n for_o both_o agree_v that_o neither_o church_n nor_o council_n do_v publish_v jmmediate_a revelation_n nor_o create_v any_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o declare_v and_o unfold_v by_o their_o definition_n that_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o some_o manner_n first_o deliver_v both_o of_o they_o likewise_o confess_v that_o whether_o the_o principle_n from_o which_o the_o church_n or_o general_a council_n deduce_v their_o definition_n have_v intrinsical_v and_o necessary_a connexion_n with_o the_o doctrine_n define_v or_o no_o yet_o the_o conclusion_n or_o definition_n itself_o be_v of_o infallible_a verity_n the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o direct_v the_o council_n that_o it_o never_o define_v any_o conclusion_n to_o be_v of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la matter_n reveasd_v by_o god_n either_o in_o those_o principle_n from_o which_o the_o council_n deduce_v it_o or_o at_o least_o in_o some_o other_o the_o relatour_n whole_a discourse_n therefore_o upon_o this_o subject_n of_o prophecy_n fall_v of_o itself_o to_o the_o ground_n as_o be_v build_v upon_o a_o pure_a i_o have_v almost_o say_v a_o wilful_a mistake_v viz_o that_o stapleton_n maintain_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v prophetical_a in_o a_o proper_a sense_n which_o he_o do_v not_o and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v whole_o needless_a for_o our_o adversary_n to_o talk_v so_o much_o of_o enthusiasm_n and_o tell_v we_o so_o punctual_o what_o prophecy_n be_v what_o vision_n and_o that_o neither_o of_o both_o be_v to_o be_v get_v with_o study_n and_o industry_n for_o we_o know_v all_o this_o and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o style_v the_o definition_n of_o council_n revelation_n or_o prophecy_n or_o vision_n or_o the_o like_a but_o willing_o acknowledge_v they_o be_v the_o result_v of_o much_o study_n and_o industry_n only_o we_o aerre_v the_o study_n and_o industry_n which_o the_o prelate_n in_o general_n council_n do_v use_v for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o truth_n be_v always_o crown_v by_o god_n with_o such_o success_n as_o infallible_o preserve_v they_o from_o error_n stapleton_n go_v on_o and_o give_v we_o the_o reason_n why_o a_o general_n 3._o council_n must_v necessary_o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o conclusion_n because_o that_o which_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o church_n be_v matter_n of_o faith_n not_o of_o knowledge_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o church_n propose_v it_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d though_o it_o use_v mean_n yet_o it_o stand_v not_o upon_o art_n mean_n or_o argument_n but_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n else_o when_o we_o embrace_v the_o conclusion_n propose_v it_o will_v not_o be_v a_o assent_n of_o faith_n but_o a_o habit_n of_o knowledge_n to_o this_o the_o bishop_n reply_v seem_v to_o broach_v a_o new_a doctrine_n namely_o that_o the_o assent_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v a_o habit_n of_o knowledge_n to_o this_o the_o reply_v bishop_n seem_v to_o broach_v a_o new_a doctrine_n namely_o that_o the_o assent_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v a_o habit_n of_o knowledge_n but_o sure_o divine_a faith_n be_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n hebr._n 11._o a_o argument_n of_o thing_n which_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o wit_n by_o the_o same_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o give_v this_o assent_n of_o faith_n otherwise_o our_o faith_n will_v not_o be_v free_a and_o meritorious_a it_o be_v true_a the_o same_o conclusion_n may_v be_v faith_n to_o one_o and_o knowledge_n to_o another_o according_a to_o st._n austin_n and_o st._n thomas_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n but_o this_o must_v be_v upon_o different_a motive_n and_o therefore_o fayth_n as_o faith_n can_v never_o be_v knowledge_n which_o be_v all_o that_o stapleton_n urge_v the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n then_o which_o we_o have_v for_o our_o faith_n do_v not_o by_o evident_a demonstration_n show_v the_o truth_n thereof_o though_o they_o make_v it_o evident_o credible_a in_o so_o much_o as_o he_o will_v be_v imprudent_a who_o shall_v refuse_v to_o give_v his_o assent_n so_o though_o the_o bishop_n do_v true_o assert_v that_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v able_a 5._o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o philosopher_n and_o other_o great_a man_n of_o reason_n when_o it_o be_v at_o the_o high_a yet_o this_o be_v also_o true_a that_o our_o saviour_n do_v never_o intend_v to_o set_v up_o a_o school_n of_o knowledge_n but_o of_o faith_n and_o that_o council_n in_o their_o definition_n rely_v not_o on_o any_o demonstrative_a reason_n but_o on_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n promise_v to_o they_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o faithful_a ground_n not_o themselves_o on_o any_o demonstration_n propose_v to_o they_o by_o the_o church_n but_o on_o god_n revelation_n obscure_o but_o certain_o and_o infallible_o apply_v to_o they_o by_o the_o church_n 2_o in_o the_o seven_o consideration_n the_o relatour_n take_v notice_n again_o of_o a_o query_n that_o a._n c._n make_v to_o he_o viz._n if_o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v wherein_o be_v we_o near_o to_o unity_n by_o such_o a_o council_n but_o in_o stead_n of_o give_v a_o punctual_a and_o direct_a answer_n as_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v he_o fall_v a_o fresh_a upon_o certain_a new_a consideration_n which_o he_o advance_v upon_o this_o subject_n whether_o the_o protestant_a opinion_n that_o general_n council_n may_v err_v in_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n or_o the_o catholic_a opinion_n that_o they_o can_v be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o church_n and_o more_o able_a to_o preserve_v and_o reduce_v christian_a peace_n which_o in_o effect_n be_v little_a else_o but_o to_o answer_v one_o query_n by_o many_o and_o have_v bring_v his_o reader_n almost_o to_o the_o port_n of_o his_o labyrinth_n by_o a_o gentle_a turn_n to_o lead_v he_o back_o again_o through_o all_o the_o meander_n thereof_o however_o we_o must_v observe_v his_o motion_n 3._o his_o first_o query_n or_o consideration_n be_v whether_o a_o absolute_a infallibility_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o present_a church_n or_o whether_o such_o a_o infallibility_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n as_o stapleton_n acknowledge_v i_o answer_v no_o doubt_n but_o it_o will_v let_n protestant_n acknowledge_v but_o such_o a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n as_o that_o worthy_a doctor_n maintain_v and_o we_o shall_v be_v agree_v for_o that_o matter_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v our_o 3._o adversary_n do_v here_o only_o confound_v his_o reader_n and_o wrong_v the_o author_n he_o allege_v by_o not_o declare_v sufficient_o in_o what_o sense_n he_o speak_v for_o stapleton_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v express_o teach_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v infallible_a not_o only_o in_o their_o decree_n or_o conclusion_n but_o also_o in_o the_o mean_n or_o argument_n and_o this_o he_o call_v absolute_a or_o exact_a infallibility_n whereas_o the_o present_a church_n be_v only_o infallible_a in_o the_o decree_n or_o conclusion_n and_o this_o also_o it_o have_v by_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o not_o by_o a_o new_a immediate_a revelation_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o author_n be_v clear_a for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n though_o he_o do_v not_o in_o all_o respect_n equal_v it_o to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v not_o he_o but_o the_o bishop_n himself_o that_o wriggle_v in_o the_o bussiness_n unworthy_o endeavour_v to_o draw_v his_o author_n to_o a_o sense_n no_o way_n intend_v by_o he_o 12._o bellarmin_n be_v use_v no_o better_o who_o doctrine_n be_v clear_a that_o in_o the_o decree_n or_o conclusion_n a_o general_n council_n be_v as_o certain_a as_o the_o scripture_n because_o both_o be_v infallible_a and_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o certain_a than_o what_o be_v infallible_a though_o in_o other_o respect_v scripture_n have_v many_o preroagtive_n above_o general_n council_n as_o that_o it_o be_v god_n immediate_a revelation_n that_o there_o not_o only_o the_o conclusion_n but_o every_o thing_n be_v matter_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n which_o agree_v not_o to_o a_o general_n council_n 4._o however_o to_o pass_v to_o this_o second_o consideration_n or_o query_n 3._o we_o shall_v not_o much_o quarrel_n his_o term_n of_o congruous_a infallibility_n but_o rest_v content_v if_o protestant_n will_v acknowledge_v such_o a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o present_a church_n as_o be_v congruous_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n so_o as_o by_o virtue_n